Selected quad for the lemma: book_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
book_n body_n express_v great_a 66 3 2.1248 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A12701 An ansvvere to Master Iohn De Albines, notable discourse against heresies (as his frendes call his booke) compiled by Thomas Spark pastor of Blechley in the county of Buck Sparke, Thomas, 1548-1616.; Albin de Valsergues, Jean d', d. 1566. Marques de la vraye église catholique. English. 1591 (1591) STC 23019; ESTC S117703 494,957 544

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

of_o those_o word_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n kill_v &_o therefore_o he_o teach_v we_o there_o spiritual_o to_o understand_v they_o who_o upon_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n gather_v that_o no_o wicked_a man_n can_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n upon_o mat._n c._n 15._o as_o for_o the_o other_o part_n he_o grant_v the_o wicked_a may_v eat_v &_o that_o when_o it_o have_v be_v eat_v in_o the_o end_n it_o be_v avoid_v into_o the_o place_n of_o easement_n hom_o 15._o upon_o mat._n athanasius_n note_v the_o christ_n make_v mention_v of_o his_o ascension_n john_n 6._o to_o wtdraw_v they_o from_o corporal_a &_o fleshly_a understanding_n of_o his_o word_n upon_o these_o word_n whosoever_o speak_v a_o word_n against_o the_o son_n etc._n etc._n but_o chrys_n go_v plain_o to_o work_v &_o say_v in_o his_o 11._o hom_o upon_o mat._n that_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n himself_o be_v not_o in_o the_o holy_a vessel_n but_o the_o mystery_n &_o sacrament_n thereof_o be_v therein_o contain_v and_o therefore_o in_o his_o 46._o hom._n upon_o john_n show_v we_o the_o christ_n say_v the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o john_n 6._o thereby_o warn_v we_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o carnal_a and_o fleshly_a understanding_n of_o his_o word_n which_o be_v to_o understand_v they_o say_v he_o simple_o and_o in_o his_o 4._o homil_n upon_o the_o 4._o to_o the_o corinth_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o carrion_n where_o the_o eagle_n will_v be_v he_o name_v eagle_n say_v he_o to_o show_v that_o who_o so_o will_v approach_v to_o his_o body_n must_v mount_v aloft_o &_o have_v no_o deal_n with_o the_o earth_n nor_o be_v draw_v downward_o but_o must_v evermore_o fly_v up_o etc._n etc._n for_o this_o be_v a_o table_n of_o eagle_n say_v he_o that_o fly_v on_o high_a &_o not_o of_o jay_n that_o creep_v beneath_o christ_n take_v bread_n which_o comfort_v man_n hart_n that_o he_o may_v represent_v thereby_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n say_v hier._n upon_o the_o 26._o of_o mat._n as_o thou_o have_v in_o baptism_n receve_v the_o similitude_n of_o death_n so_o likewise_o do_v thou_o in_o this_o sacrament_n drink_v the_o similitude_n of_o christ_n blood_n say_v ambrose_n in_o his_o 4_o book_n &_o 4_o c._n of_o the_o sacrament_n cyprian_n de_fw-fr unctione_n chrismatis_fw-la write_v thus_o christ_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n give_v unto_o his_o apostle_n bread_n &_o wine_n which_o he_o call_v his_o body_n &_o blood_n but_o on_o the_o cross_n he_o give_v his_o very_a body_n to_o be_v wound_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o soldier_n that_o the_o apostle_n may_v declare_v unto_o the_o world_n how_o &_o in_o what_o manner_n the_o bread_n may_v be_v the_o flesh_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o manner_n straight_o way_n he_o declare_v thus_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o do_v signify_v &_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v signify_v by_o they_o may_v be_v both_o call_v by_o one_o name_n fulgentius_n in_o his_o book_n to_o king_n thrasimund_n have_v these_o word_n this_o cup_n or_o chalice_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v do_v signify_v the_o new_a testament_n theodoret_n in_o his_o first_o dialogue_n most_o plain_o write_v that_o christ_n honour_v the_o sign_n and_o representation_n which_o be_v see_v with_o the_o name_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n not_o change_v their_o nature_n but_o add_v grace_n to_o nature_n and_o yet_o more_o plain_o in_o the_o 2._o dialogue_n he_o write_v thus_o the_o mystical_a sign_n after_o sanctification_n go_v not_o from_o their_o nature_n for_o they_o tarry_v in_o their_o former_a substance_n figure_n and_o form_n yea_o even_a gelasius_n a_o pope_n about_o the_o year_n 500_o against_o eutiches_n be_v as_o plain_a say_v in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o substance_n and_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v not_o for_o the_o image_n and_o similitude_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v celebrate_v in_o those_o mystery_n and_o bertram_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o this_o matter_n write_v in_o the_o time_n of_o carolus_n caluus_fw-la labour_v by_o many_o proof_n &_o testimony_n to_o show_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v still_o and_o that_o we_o be_v here_o to_o follow_v christ_n in_o a_o figure_n and_o mystery_n and_o bede_n upon_o luke_n 22._o say_v because_o bread_n do_v comfort_n man_n heart_n and_o wine_n do_v make_v good_a blood_n in_o his_o body_n therefore_o the_o bread_n be_v mystical_o compare_v to_o christ_n body_n and_o the_o wine_n to_o christ_n blood_n the_o like_a say_n have_v haymo_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n de_fw-fr sermonum_fw-la proprietate_fw-la emissenus_fw-la de_fw-fr consecrat_fw-mi dist_n 2._o cap._n quia_fw-la corpus_fw-la compare_v the_o conversion_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o conversion_n in_o a_o man_n regenerate_v which_o we_o all_o know_v be_v in_o quality_n and_o not_o in_o substance_n there_o be_v two_o epistle_n yet_o extant_a in_o the_o saxon_a tongue_n make_v by_o one_o alfricke_n in_o king_n etheldreds_n time_n about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o lord_n 996_o be_v then_o as_o some_o write_v bishop_n of_o canterbury_n wherein_o he_o teach_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v no_o otherwise_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n than_o manna_n and_o the_o water_n of_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n who_o also_o translate_v 80_o sermon_n out_o of_o latin_a into_o the_o saxon_a tongue_n whereof_o 24._o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v read_v for_o homily_n and_o in_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v read_v on_o easter_n day_n there_o be_v much_o direct_a matter_n against_o transubstantiation_n and_o your_o real_a presence_n and_o since_o these_o time_n you_o know_v well_o enough_o we_o have_v have_v many_o from_o time_n to_o time_n yea_o mo_z they_o you_o well_o like_a of_o that_o have_v be_v as_o flat_a and_o direct_a against_o your_o kind_n of_o real_a presence_n as_o we_o be_v now_o this_o master_n fox_n book_n of_o act_n and_o monument_n have_v make_v evident_a to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v famous_o know_v that_o before_o your_o lateran_n council_n under_o innocent_a the_o 3._o in_o the_o year_n 1215._o it_o be_v not_o decree_v to_o be_v as_o you_o now_o hold_v it_o appear_v also_o by_o the_o last_o session_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n which_o be_v not_o much_o above_o 140._o year_n ago_o that_o the_o greek_a church_n until_o then_o stand_v against_o your_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o your_o real_a presence_n and_o tonstall_n though_o otherwise_o a_o great_a man_n on_o your_o side_n yet_o in_o his_o book_n of_o this_o sacrament_n say_v perhaps_o it_o have_v be_v better_a to_o leave_v every_o man_n that_o will_v be_v curious_a concern_v this_o matter_n of_o the_o manner_n how_o christ_n be_v present_a to_o his_o own_o conjecture_n as_o by_o his_o confession_n before_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n it_o be_v leave_v at_o liberty_n and_o john_n duns_n a_o friend_n of_o you_o upon_o the_o 4._o book_n of_o the_o sentence_n say_v that_o the_o word_n may_v have_v be_v expound_v more_o plain_o then_o by_o transubstantiation_n if_o it_o have_v please_v the_o church_n gabriel_n biell_n another_o great_a doctor_n upon_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o his_o 40._o read_v plain_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o bible_n how_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o whither_o by_o transubstantiation_n or_o consubstantiation_n even_o so_o your_o great_a bishop_n john_n fisher_n write_v against_o luther_n book_n of_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n be_v enforce_v to_o confess_v that_o he_o find_v not_o in_o matthew_n nor_o any_o where_o else_o in_o the_o scripture_n any_o thing_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v thereby_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o your_o mass_n nor_o that_o whensoever_o a_o priest_n shall_v go_v about_o that_o matter_n he_o make_v the_o bread_n &_o wine_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o conclude_v that_o he_o think_v that_o every_o man_n understand_v that_o the_o certainty_n of_o that_o matter_n depend_v not_o so_o much_o of_o the_o gospel_n as_o it_o do_v upon_o the_o use_n tradition_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n these_o testimony_n forasmuch_o as_o direct_o they_o be_v against_o your_o literal_a exposition_n of_o christ_n word_n your_o new_a devise_n of_o transubstantiation_n the_o only_a pillar_n and_o buttress_n of_o your_o real_a presence_n and_o against_o your_o gross_a and_o carnal_a eat_n of_o he_o with_o the_o bodily_a mouth_n of_o all_o receiver_n good_a and_o bad_a they_o may_v not_o be_v deny_v to_o be_v forcible_a against_o your_o real_a presence_n for_o the_o cause_n thereof_o deny_v and_o take_v away_o the_o effect_n must_v cease_v and_o if_o the_o
word_n well_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o he_o count_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n straight_o as_o well_o in_o respect_n of_o religion_n as_o life_n and_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o usual_a with_o david_n then_o indifferent_o without_o any_o such_o nice_a distinction_n to_o use_v these_o word_n way_n and_o path_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o you_o may_v easy_o perceive_v if_o you_o be_v any_o thing_n conversant_a in_o his_o psalm_n look_v upon_o christ_n time_n whereunto_o he_o have_v a_o especial_a eye_n when_o he_o use_v these_o word_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o true_a religion_n be_v a_o thing_n more_o geyson_n and_o rare_a then_o in_o the_o world_n and_o have_v few_o follower_n then_o a_o holy_a and_o a_o virtuous_a life_n for_o even_o many_o of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o philosopher_n make_v great_a show_n of_o that_o &_o that_o therefore_o to_o lead_v we_o rather_o to_o think_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o religion_n than_o manner_n he_o have_v utter_v those_o word_n immediate_o thereupon_o he_o add_v beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n and_o as_o for_o david_n if_o your_o argument_n be_v ground_v upon_o that_o that_o he_o place_v the_o word_n way_n in_o the_o first_o place_n and_o path_n in_o the_o late_a if_o you_o mark_v he_o well_o you_o shall_v oftentimes_o find_v he_o to_o invert_v that_o order_n in_o the_o psalm_n and_o psalm_n 109._o because_o you_o shall_v plain_o see_v that_o he_o refer_v way_n as_o well_o to_o manner_n as_o to_o religion_n he_o say_v take_v from_o i_o the_o way_n of_o lie_v and_o teach_v i_o the_o way_n of_o thy_o statute_n and_o consider_v that_o you_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o idolatry_n and_o paganism_n in_o christ_n time_n be_v more_o common_a than_o christ_n religion_n &_o therefore_o have_v 10000_o that_o take_v it_o for_o true_a religion_n in_o comparison_n of_o one_o that_o take_v christ_n so_n i_o wonder_v that_o you_o ever_o dare_v thus_o expound_v christ_n word_n for_o by_o your_o exposition_n he_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v better_a for_o they_o to_o embrace_v paganism_n than_o his_o religion_n for_o that_o be_v the_o common_a beat_a way_n and_o his_o be_v but_o a_o small_a bie-path_n again_o in_o liberius_n his_o time_n when_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o find_v one_o true_a catholic_a for_o a_o 100_o arrian_n insomuch_o that_o constantine_n say_v unto_o liberius_n that_o he_o alone_o favour_v athanasius_n theodor._n eccles_n hist_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 16._o by_o your_o rule_n liberius_n do_v well_o in_o that_o see_v arrianisme_n to_o be_v the_o common_a way_n and_o his_o ancient_a religion_n that_o then_o be_v but_o as_o a_o bie-path_n wherein_o few_o walk_v that_o he_o yield_v his_o subscription_n to_o arrianisme_n indeed_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o this_o pope_n liberius_n be_v of_o your_o mind_n &_o so_o long_v you_o care_v not_o i_o be_o sure_a as_o that_o you_o may_v have_v a_o pope_n on_o your_o side_n well_o yet_o if_o you_o have_v but_o remember_v that_o the_o turkish_a religion_n be_v at_o this_o day_n &_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n common_a to_o more_o than_o your_o own_o religion_n be_v or_o ever_o be_v it_o may_v have_v stay_v you_o from_o teach_v man_n to_o measure_v religion_n by_o the_o commonne_n of_o it_o or_o multitude_n of_o follower_n lest_o you_o shall_v have_v so_o persuade_v they_o to_o turkism_n but_o it_o may_v be_v you_o have_v rather_o have_v it_o so_o see_v in_o comparison_n thereof_o we_o be_v but_o a_o narrow_a path_n wherein_o few_o do_v walk_v then_o that_o they_o shall_v follow_v us._n if_o your_o skill_n in_o interpret_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o in_o prescribe_v rule_n for_o the_o direction_n of_o man_n be_v no_o better_o than_o you_o have_v show_v in_o this_o you_o may_v very_o well_o be_v a_o doctor_n and_o great_a master_n in_o your_o blind_a and_o ignorant_a kingdom_n of_o popery_n but_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v little_a hope_n that_o there_o will_v ever_o any_o great_a reckon_n be_v make_v of_o you_o the_o xli_o chapter_n now_o to_o turn_v to_o the_o partition_n that_o we_o have_v upon_o the_o 34._o and_o 37._o of_o ezechiel_n and_o upon_o the_o ten_o of_o john_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o we_o be_v the_o flock_n of_o weak_a and_o sickelie_o sheep_n and_o your_o disciple_n be_v the_o sheep_n that_o run_v this_o way_n and_o that_o way_n astray_o those_o that_o be_v our_o they_o our_o howsoever_o that_o title_n be_v due_a unto_o they_o they_o take_v it_o not_o unto_o they_o ill_a prelate_n take_v upon_o they_o the_o title_n of_o mercenarii_fw-la pastoris_fw-la but_o unto_o your_o minister_n the_o title_n of_o devour_a wolf_n may_v be_v apply_v conscience_n apply_v only_o of_o such_o as_o have_v make_v shipwreck_n of_o conscience_n without_o any_o scrupulositie_n of_o conscience_n for_o you_o watch_v to_o none_o other_o intent_n but_o to_o make_v the_o sheep_n run_v out_o of_o the_o fold_n and_o to_o devour_v they_o because_o that_o our_o pastor_n have_v not_o take_v care_n to_o keep_v they_o and_o although_o they_o be_v not_o excusable_a aswell_o for_o their_o silence_n as_o for_o their_o naughty_a life_n i_o see_v not_o your_o patriarch_n &_o zealous_a manifester_n amend_v much_o themselves_o the_o fault_n that_o they_o find_v in_o we_o for_o beside_o the_o true_a and_o certain_a experience_n that_o we_o have_v have_v by_o the_o trial_n that_o we_o have_v see_v to_o our_o cost_n in_o this_o realm_n within_o these_o five_o or_o six_o year_n lie_n year_n pen_v then_o by_o such_o that_o have_v teach_v their_o pen_n to_o write_v lie_n i_o have_v read_v full_a many_o a_o golden_a legend_n of_o your_o sacred_a martyr_n and_o holy_a bishop_n which_o do_v not_o altogether_o redound_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o your_o pretend_a reform_a church_n and_o among_o other_o theodore_n de_fw-fr beza_n caluins_n successor_n in_o the_o pontificate_n seat_n of_o the_o holy_a city_n of_o geneva_n of_o who_o such_o thing_n be_v preach_v abroad_o that_o if_o the_o one_o half_a of_o they_o be_v true_a ourselves_o true_a neither_o will_v ●e_v nor_o any_o of_o we_o so_o compare_v ourselves_o he_o be_v scant_o so_o good_a a_o man_n as_o s._n john_n baptist_n and_o because_o i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o to_o mislike_v they_o for_o their_o religion_n i_o will_v not_o allege_v to_o verify_v this_o any_o catholic_n author_n but_o soon_o of_o luther_n successor_n your_o first_o founder_n who_o teach_v you_o to_o write_v so_o learned_o i_o will_v say_v rail_o against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n tilemanus_fw-la heshusius_fw-la a_o minister_n of_o the_o lutheran_n in_o the_o latin_n the_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrif_n write_v in_o latin_n book_n that_o i_o have_v already_o note_v do_v open_o accuse_v the_o say_v beza_n of_o great_a infamy_n that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o content_v he_o content_v heat_v of_o contention_n make_v the_o man_n too_o credulous_a and_o so_o believe_v your_o malicious_a parasite_n that_o most_o impudent_o and_o false_o have_v forge_v these_o thing_n of_o he_o the_o fancy_n of_o his_o mind_n with_o lead_v a_o luxurious_a &_o a_o licentious_a life_n &_o to_o stain_v his_o vow_n with_o a_o bilt_n of_o adulterous_a love_n but_o that_o that_o be_v worse_a he_o himself_o have_v set_v forth_o in_o write_v all_o his_o lascivious_a act_n the_o which_o say_v he_o we_o he_o his_o lascivious_a song_n and_o epigram_n he_o make_v and_o publish_v while_o he_o be_v you_o whereof_o he_o have_v public_o in_o print_n testify_v his_o repentance_n &_o mislike_n since_o he_o be_v we_o he_o have_v song_n in_o sacrilegerime_n to_o the_o instrument_n to_o manifest_v his_o sin_n to_o the_o whole_a sight_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o that_o very_a book_n he_o do_v say_v that_o beza_n who_o as_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o the_o holy_a city_n of_o geneva_n be_v a_o infamous_a monster_n who_o naughty_a life_n any_o man_n may_v read_v set_v forth_o by_o himself_o in_o his_o own_o epigram_n and_o notwithstanding_o say_v he_o to_o hear_v he_o speak_v you_o will_v think_v he_o be_v saint_n john_n baptist_n for_o he_o can_v talk_v of_o nothing_o but_o of_o his_o holy_a life_n this_o same_o very_a minister_n in_o the_o book_n where_o he_o write_v these_o thing_n he_o do_v lie_v to_o slander_n to_o the_o more_o shame_n for_o he_o for_o it_o be_v a_o monstrous_a and_o notorious_a slander_n bezaes_n charge_n that_o he_o take_v with_o he_o to_o geneva_n another_o man_n wife_n without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o her_o husband_n who_o name_n be_v candida_n neither_o candida_n will_v a_o argument_n from_o one_o to_o all_o follow_v with_o papist_n and_o yet_o this_o one_o not_o prove_v such_o a_o one_o neither_o
a_o answer_n to_o master_n john_n de_fw-fr albines_n notable_a discourse_n against_o heresy_n as_o his_o friend_n call_v his_o book_n compile_v by_o thomas_n spark_n pastor_n of_o blechley_n in_o the_o county_n of_o buck._n and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v come_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n revelat._n 18_o vers_fw-la 4._o put_v yourselves_o in_o array_n against_o babylon_n round_o about_o all_o you_o that_o bend_v the_o bow_n shoot_v at_o she_o spare_v no_o arrow_n for_o she_o have_v sin_v against_o the_o lord_n jerem._n 50._o vers_fw-la 14._o academia_n oxoniensis_fw-la sapientiae_fw-la et_fw-la felicitatis_fw-la print_a at_o oxford_n by_o joseph_n barnes_n printer_n to_o the_o university_n 1591._o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a arthure_n lord_n grey_z of_o wilton_n knight_n of_o the_o most_o honourable_a order_n of_o the_o garter_n his_o especial_a good_a lord_n and_o patron_n thomas_n spark_n wish_v all_o good_a perseverance_n in_o christian_a courage_n and_o constancy_n in_o the_o profession_n and_o furtherance_n of_o god_n sincere_a truth_n with_o all_o other_o ornament_n of_o true_a nobility_n to_o god_n glory_n our_o comfort_n and_o his_o own_o heart_n good_a contentation_n now_o and_o ever_o although_o right_o honourable_a when_o i_o have_v first_o peruse_v this_o treatise_n of_o john_n de_fw-fr albine_n i_o find_v it_o through_o out_o a_o most_o bitter_a invective_n &_o a_o malicious_a declamation_n write_v only_o of_o purpose_n to_o deface_v &_o disgrace_v among_o the_o simple_a both_o our_o religion_n &_o the_o minister_n &_o professor_n thereof_o yet_o find_v withal_o as_o i_o do_v &_o as_o any_o indifferent_a man_n that_o read_v it_o shall_v that_o neither_o for_o matter_n nor_o manner_n of_o writing_n there_o be_v any_o new_a thing_n of_o any_o importance_n in_o it_o which_o have_v not_o be_v before_o ever_o this_o discourse_n of_o his_o see_v the_o light_n often_o &_o that_o far_o more_o substantial_o urge_v by_o some_o other_o of_o that_o side_n &_o therefore_o which_o have_v not_o also_o heretofore_o be_v as_o often_o full_o &_o effectual_o answer_v by_o some_o or_o other_o of_o we_o i_o not_o only_o judge_v this_o to_o be_v the_o reason_n when_o it_o have_v now_o be_v among_o we_o in_o english_a these_o 16._o or_o 17._o year_n none_o hitherto_o have_v vouchsafe_v it_o any_o further_a particular_a answer_n but_o also_o though_o urge_v as_o your_o honour_n know_v to_o frame_v unto_o it_o a_o special_a &_o direct_a answer_n i_o can_v yet_o hardly_o be_v bring_v to_o think_v it_o necessary_a so_o base_o i_o esteem_v of_o it_o to_o aford_v it_o any_o other_o answer_n then_o either_o a_o few_o marginal_a note_n that_o when_o i_o first_o read_v it_o i_o bestow_v upon_o it_o or_o from_o point_n to_o point_n as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o table_n to_o have_v show_v the_o reader_n where_o and_o by_o who_o he_o may_v read_v the_o same_o thing_n long_o ago_o &_o often_o object_v on_o the_o one_o side_n &_o answer_v by_o the_o other_o which_o may_v have_v be_v in_o one_o sheet_n of_o paper_n very_o well_o dispatch_v howbeit_o in_o the_o end_n call_v to_o mind_n what_o your_o lordship_n tell_v i_o concern_v the_o opinion_n that_o our_o poor_a seduce_a countryman_n seem_v secret_o to_o have_v among_o themselves_o of_o it_o as_o you_o learn_v by_o one_o of_o their_o own_o speech_n have_v thereof_o unto_o yourself_o in_o acquaint_v you_o first_o with_o the_o book_n and_o mark_v how_o not_o only_o by_o publish_v it_o in_o english_a but_o also_o by_o entitle_v it_o both_o in_o the_o forehead_n &_o over_o every_o leaf_n a_o notable_a discourse_n against_o heresy_n they_o themselves_o have_v plain_o show_v that_o they_o have_v it_o in_o no_o base_a account_n &_o find_v it_o also_o since_o to_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o certain_a learned_a man_n of_o ancient_a and_o long_a experience_n even_o of_o our_o own_o side_n now_o this_o last_o year_n publish_v in_o print_n that_o the_o have_v of_o this_o very_a book_n so_o long_o in_o secret_a among_o they_o unanswered_a have_v be_v one_o great_a cause_n of_o the_o apostasy_n of_o so_o many_o young_a man_n as_o of_o late_a year_n in_o this_o our_o country_n have_v revolt_v from_o the_o truth_n to_o popery_n at_o the_o last_o i_o resolve_v with_o myself_o though_o i_o know_v that_o when_o i_o have_v do_v what_o i_o can_v herein_o that_o i_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o have_v say_v little_a or_o nothing_o not_o say_v &_o write_v aswell_o before_o by_o some_o one_o or_o other_o of_o our_o side_n that_o yet_o your_o lordship_n request_n make_v unto_o i_o to_o answer_v it_o as_o full_o and_o direct_o as_o i_o can_v when_o you_o first_o show_v i_o the_o book_n &_o how_o you_o come_v by_o it_o be_v &_o be_v such_o as_o that_o both_o of_o duty_n to_o yourself_o particular_o for_o sundry_a cause_n &_o to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n general_o for_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v many_o may_v see_v together_o a_o answer_n to_o that_o which_o otherwise_o in_o great_a part_n either_o they_o may_v chance_v never_o to_o hit_v of_o in_o any_o other_o writer_n of_o we_o or_o else_o be_v drive_v to_o search_v more_o &_o those_o further_a than_o it_o be_v likely_a they_o will_v or_o can_v i_o be_v bind_v to_o satisfy_v in_o as_o good_a sort_n as_o any_o way_n convenient_o i_o can_v have_v therefore_o encouradgement_n by_o these_o reason_n to_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n &_o have_v now_o by_o god_n grace_n finish_v it_o in_o manner_n as_o you_o see_v i_o present_v the_o same_o unto_o your_o honour_n as_o a_o undoubted_a token_n of_o my_o dutiful_a affection_n towards_o you_o beseech_v you_o not_o only_o to_o take_v the_o pain_n as_o your_o leisure_n serve_v you_o to_o peruse_v it_o over_o yourself_o but_o also_o desyre_v you_o to_o be_v unto_o it_o such_o a_o patron_n as_o that_o it_o come_v abroad_o thus_o by_o your_o provocation_n it_o may_v have_v your_o best_a protection_n and_o countenance_n to_o pass_v up_o and_o down_o open_o and_o bold_o both_o in_o the_o view_n of_o friend_n and_o foe_n unto_o it_o there_o be_v prefix_v before_o john_n de_fw-fr albines_n book_n which_o your_o honour_n deliver_v i_o a_o long_a preface_n to_o the_o reader_n make_v as_o it_o shall_v seem_v by_o the_o publisher_n thereof_o in_o english_a and_o there_o be_v annex_v unto_o it_o in_o the_o late_a end_n a_o offer_n of_o a_o catholic_a as_o he_o be_v there_o term_v to_o a_o learned_a protestant_n consist_v of_o two_o and_o twenty_o demand_n and_o six_o sign_n of_o false_a prophet_n heretic_n and_o schismatics_n the_o preface_n i_o have_v answer_v and_o the_o answer_n thereunto_o i_o have_v place_v next_o unto_o my_o answer_n unto_o albines_n book_n itself_o somewhat_o also_o i_o have_v annex_v that_o answer_n of_o i_o to_o his_o book_n finish_v in_o the_o latter_a end_n to_o show_v the_o vanity_n and_o childishness_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o author_n have_v utter_v in_o the_o application_n of_o those_o six_o sign_n to_o we_o but_o to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v write_v concern_v those_o two_o and_o twenty_o demand_n i_o have_v say_v nothing_o and_o indeed_o because_o otherwise_o the_o book_n be_v grow_v far_o great_a than_o i_o imagine_v at_o the_o first_o it_o will_v i_o have_v not_o at_o all_o insert_v that_o offer_n nor_o any_o part_n thereof_o the_o reason_n of_o my_o not_o meddle_v at_o all_o with_o those_o two_o and_o twenty_o demand_n and_o not_o trouble_v this_o my_o book_n at_o all_o with_o any_o part_n of_o that_o offer_n be_v that_o doctor_n fulke_n long_o ago_o have_v answer_v those_o demand_n and_o that_o also_o now_o of_o late_a master_n crowley_n have_v at_o large_a answer_v both_o they_o and_o that_o which_o be_v add_v concern_v those_o sign_n doctor_n fulke_n answer_v thereunto_o may_v be_v have_v under_o the_o title_n of_o a_o answer_n of_o a_o christian_a protestant_n to_o the_o proud_a challenge_n of_o a_o popish_a catholic_a and_o it_o be_v prefix_v common_o before_o his_o book_n write_v in_o confutation_n of_o allens_n of_o purgatory_n indeed_o concern_v the_o six_o sign_n he_o say_v nothing_o not_o because_o of_o any_o great_a matter_n in_o they_o then_o in_o the_o rest_n but_o because_o at_o the_o first_o they_o be_v not_o publish_v with_o the_o other_o the_o demand_n though_o he_o have_v answer_v short_o according_a to_o his_o manner_n yet_o so_o sharp_o and_o effectual_o he_o have_v do_v it_o that_o if_o the_o challenger_n be_v a_o man_n of_o his_o word_n he_o continue_v not_o long_o after_o a_o popish_a catholic_a master_n crowleys_n answer_v to_o the_o whole_a offer_n word_n for_o word_n as_o it_o be_v annex_v
to_o john_n de_fw-fr albines_n book_n be_v extant_a under_o the_o title_n of_o a_o deliberate_a answer_n to_o a_o rash_a offer_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o be_v print_v by_o john_n charlewoode_n in_o london_n 1588._o they_o both_o have_v with_o their_o answer_n set_v down_o the_o word_n of_o the_o offerer_n the_o travel_n of_o these_o two_o man_n have_v ease_v both_o i_o &_o this_o book_n of_o i_o of_o meddle_v any_o further_a than_o i_o have_v say_v with_o that_o challenger_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o since_o he_o have_v his_o first_o answer_n we_o never_o yet_o hear_v that_o he_o have_v either_o skill_n or_o will_n to_o reply_v i_o may_v well_o enough_o consider_v the_o largeness_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o master_n crowleys_n answer_v thereunto_o have_v omit_v that_o which_o i_o further_o have_v say_v to_o answer_v his_o six_o sign_n not_o touch_v by_o doctor_n fulke_n but_o that_o what_o i_o have_v write_v thereabouts_o be_v write_v before_o i_o see_v master_n crowleys_n answer_v and_o that_o i_o think_v it_o not_o amiss_o to_o let_v it_o stand_v that_o so_o betwixt_o we_o three_o the_o whole_a thus_o may_v be_v twice_o answer_v though_o it_o be_v master_n crowley_n who_o as_o i_o note_v before_o in_o the_o first_o leaf_n of_o his_o book_n make_v answer_n to_o this_o offer_n that_o give_v that_o judgement_n that_o john_n de_fw-fr albines_n book_n have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o so_o much_o apostasy_n of_o late_a here_o among_o we_o yet_o he_o as_o he_o there_o show_v will_v not_o bestow_v time_n in_o answer_v of_o it_o because_o suppose_v by_o the_o title_n it_o be_v write_v by_o a_o frenchman_n &_o therefore_o either_o in_o french_a or_o latin_a he_o think_v that_o either_o beza_n or_o some_o other_o french_a protestant_n have_v do_v it_o already_o sufficient_o this_o when_o i_o read_v first_o it_o cause_v i_o to_o be_v the_o slack_a both_o in_o finish_v and_o publish_v this_o answer_n of_o i_o yet_o in_o the_o end_n forasmuch_o as_o this_o be_v now_o among_o we_o in_o english_a and_o therefore_o in_o his_o opinion_n have_v hurt_v so_o much_o and_o so_o many_o english_a person_n and_o i_o can_v never_o learn_v of_o any_o certainty_n that_o in_o any_o other_o language_n it_o have_v be_v direct_o answer_v by_o any_o i_o think_v it_o needful_a and_o the_o best_a way_n whether_o any_o such_o answer_n in_o any_o other_o tongue_n have_v be_v make_v unto_o it_o elsewhere_o or_o not_o to_o prevent_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v any_o further_a such_o danger_n among_o we_o by_o it_o to_o accompany_v such_o poison_n with_o his_o fit_a counterpoison_v that_o be_v such_o a_o english_a popish_a discourse_n with_o a_o english_a christian_n answer_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o howsoever_o by_o the_o title_n there_o be_v show_v that_o the_o author_n be_v a_o frenchman_n yet_o indeed_o i_o can_v hardly_o be_v persuade_v that_o he_o be_v so_o for_o his_o publisher_n in_o english_a take_v leisure_n as_o he_o have_v to_o trouble_v his_o reader_n with_o a_o long_a tedious_a and_o frivolous_a preface_n have_v not_o therein_o so_o much_o as_o secret_o once_o insinuate_v unto_o we_o in_o what_o language_n the_o author_n write_v it_o yea_o he_o have_v not_o once_o mention_v any_o translation_n of_o it_o either_o by_o himself_o or_o any_o other_o the_o consideration_n whereof_o together_o with_o sundry_a phrase_n and_o matter_n contain_v in_o the_o book_n make_v i_o rather_o think_v that_o some_o of_o our_o own_o fugitive_n english_a jesuit_n or_o seminary_a priest_n indeed_o have_v make_v it_o than_o any_o such_o archdeacon_n of_o tolosa_n in_o france_n as_o be_v pretend_v but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v not_o much_o material_a and_o therefore_o i_o have_v not_o be_v herein_o curious_a for_o these_o my_o reason_n notwithstanding_o in_o all_o this_o my_o answer_n unto_o he_o i_o frame_v my_o speech_n as_o to_o the_o author_n who_o name_n it_o bear_v and_o howsoever_o i_o may_v doubt_v of_o his_o person_n and_o country_n of_o this_o i_o be_o certain_a whosoever_o he_o be_v french_z or_o english_a the_o son_n of_o that_o bondwoman_n ishmael_n be_v never_o cunning_a in_o persecute_v the_o son_n of_o the_o freewoman_n isaac_n with_o scoff_n &_o mock_n than_o the_o author_n thereof_o be_v by_o the_o same_o mean_n to_o do_v what_o may_v be_v do_v to_o vex_v and_o grieve_v us._n whosoever_o he_o be_v the_o right_a popish_a vain_a &_o spirit_n of_o writing_n he_o have_v for_o in_o so_o short_a a_o piece_n of_o work_n i_o be_o persuade_v by_o that_o you_o have_v view_v he_o over_o together_o with_o this_o answer_n of_o i_o your_o lordship_n will_v be_v of_o opinion_n that_o never_o any_o of_o that_o faction_n go_v beyond_o he_o in_o shameful_a beg_n always_o the_o thing_n most_o in_o question_n in_o subtle_a slip_n from_o the_o matter_n undertake_v to_o prove_v into_o other_o more_o easy_a for_o he_o &_o not_o in_o question_n in_o false_a quote_v &_o abuse_v the_o testimony_n which_o he_o allege_n or_o in_o barrenness_n of_o matter_n or_o method_n in_o such_o copy_n of_o swell_a brag_a and_o triumph_v word_n sure_o i_o be_o for_o my_o own_o part_n though_o i_o know_v these_o be_v the_o common_a ornament_n of_o popish_a writer_n that_o i_o never_o read_v any_o who_o book_n consist_v so_o whole_o of_o these_o as_o this_o of_o he_o but_o to_o leave_v he_o as_o he_o be_v whosoever_o he_o be_v and_o to_o return_v unto_o your_o lordship_n once_o again_o i_o dedicate_v and_o offer_v this_o my_o poor_a labour_n unto_o your_o honourable_a view_n &_o protection_n which_o i_o do_v not_o because_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n which_o i_o have_v therein_o teach_v and_o defend_v stand_v need_n of_o the_o patronage_n of_o man_n for_o god_n the_o author_n thereof_o can_v and_o will_v defend_v and_o protect_v that_o though_o all_o the_o great_a man_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v band_v themselves_o against_o it_o but_o for_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a other_o reason_n just_o i_o move_v thereunto_o one_o be_v which_o i_o have_v touch_v already_o that_o of_o right_a the_o dedication_n hereof_o appertain_v to_o you_o because_o i_o have_v never_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n but_o by_o your_o lordship_n motion_n &_o persuasion_n a_o other_o be_v that_o you_o since_o my_o come_n to_o the_o place_n where_o i_o be_o for_o these_o eleven_o year_n last_o pass_v have_v always_o be_v &_o yet_o be_v a_o most_o love_a &_o fatherly_a patron_n to_o my_o ministry_n i_o and_o i_o by_o which_o right_n though_o that_o former_a reason_n have_v not_o be_v your_o honour_n may_v worthy_o challenge_v not_o only_o in_o this_o but_o also_o in_o all_o other_o such_o poor_a fruit_n of_o i_o grow_v from_o i_o thus_o nourish_v and_o cherish_v under_o your_o lordship_n patronage_n great_a interest_n than_o this_o which_o i_o offer_v you_o now_o herein_o but_o if_o neither_o of_o these_o two_o reason_n have_v be_v yet_o you_o be_v the_o man_n you_o be_v that_o be_v by_o the_o grace_n &_o goodness_n of_o god_n as_o far_o as_o you_o be_v know_v which_o be_v very_o far_o among_o the_o godly_a and_o true_o religious_a a_o man_n by_o birth_n honourable_a for_o martial_a prowess_n more_o and_o for_o gift_n of_o sound_n learning_n religion_n and_o virtue_n most_o of_o of_o all_o to_o be_v honour_v and_o esteem_v even_o that_o will_v have_v draw_v i_o though_o otherwise_o i_o have_v be_v a_o mere_a stranger_n unto_o you_o by_o this_o mean_n to_o have_v seek_v to_o have_v testify_v my_o dutiful_a and_o hearty_a good_a affection_n towards_o you_o for_o piety_n join_v with_o christian_a nobility_n have_v be_v the_o ancient_a cause_n why_o the_o godly_a learned_a in_o ancient_a time_n have_v dedicate_v their_o work_n to_o such_o as_o they_o have_v judge_v true_o qualify_v therewith_o doubtless_o thereby_o both_o the_o better_a to_o encourage_v they_o to_o who_o they_o dedicate_v their_o labour_n to_o proceed_v and_o go_v on_o in_o the_o good_a course_n they_o have_v begin_v and_o thereby_o to_o provoke_v other_o to_o imitate_v their_o good_a example_n that_o the_o like_a honourable_a opinion_n may_v by_o such_o also_o be_v conceive_v of_o they_o &_o likewise_o when_o occasion_n shall_v serve_v to_o their_o comfort_n testify_v public_o of_o they_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n what_o else_o move_v ambrose_n to_o dedicate_v his_o book_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o spirit_n to_o gratian_n the_o emperor_n what_o else_o cause_v lactantius_n to_o dedicate_v his_o divine_a institu●●ons_n to_o constantine_n or_o what_o else_o enduce_v the_o holy_a evangelist_n s._n luke_n to_o dedicate_v his_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o noble_a theophilus_n it_o be_v doubtless_o great_a honour_n unto_o these_o man_n in_o their_o ●imes_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n
they_o have_v deceive_v the_o simple_a people_n withal_o understande_v well-beloved_a in_o the_o lord_n whosoever_o thou_o be_v first_o for_o transubstantiation_n the_o very_a archpiller_n of_o their_o synagoge_n that_o if_o they_o be_v very_o busy_a to_o seek_v out_o who_o first_o give_v inkling_n of_o such_o a_o matter_n they_o shall_v find_v indeed_o the_o original_n thereof_o not_o to_o come_v from_o mark_v the_o evangelist_n or_o any_o of_o his_o fellowship_n but_o from_o one_o mark_v a_o notable_a magician_n and_o filthy_a heretic_n of_o the_o brood_n of_o valentinian_n that_o live_v as_o it_o seem_v by_o the_o story_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o antoninus_n pius_n about_o one_o hundred_o and_o fifteen_o year_n after_o christ_n for_o epiphanius_n in_o his_o thirty_o four_o heresy_n note_v and_o when_o he_o have_v do_v plentiful_o confirm_v it_o out_o of_o the_o first_o book_n of_o irenaeus_n and_o his_o nine_o chapter_n against_o the_o heresy_n of_o valentinian_n &_o other_o that_o this_o same_o heretic_n by_o his_o enchantment_n have_v first_o cause_v a_o cup_n of_o white_a wine_n to_o bear_v the_o colour_n of_o blood_n make_v his_o follower_n believe_v that_o by_o his_o invocation_n over_o it_o it_o be_v so_o transubstantiate_v into_o blood_n that_o see_v that_o he_o have_v give_v thank_n over_o it_o &_o long_o pray_v it_o may_v be_v think_v of_o they_o that_o gratiam_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la super_fw-la universa_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la suum_fw-la instillâsse_fw-la in_o illud_fw-la poculum_fw-la that_o be_v that_o grace_n that_o be_v above_o all_o thing_n have_v pour_v his_o blood_n into_o that_o cup_n by_o which_o mean_n when_o he_o have_v make_v they_o in_o admiration_n of_o he_o desirous_a to_o drink_v thereof_o he_o give_v it_o they_o with_o great_a devotion_n &_o solemnity_n of_o word_n &_o so_o wonderful_o bewitch_v many_o indeed_o this_o fellow_n may_v very_o well_o be_v allow_v for_o the_o first_o ancient_a founder_n of_o this_o point_n of_o doctrine_n for_o there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o point_n of_o popery_n wherein_o antichrist_n have_v more_o manifest_o show_v himself_o contrary_a to_o christ_n then_o in_o this_o as_o in_o truth_n there_o be_v not_o because_o for_o the_o establish_n &_o use_n of_o this_o he_o be_v both_o spoil_v of_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o a_o man_n &_o office_n of_o the_o only_a sufficient_a priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o offer_v himself_o once_o for_o all_o for_o the_o redemption_n of_o his_o church_n who_o can_v be_v fit_a than_o this_o ancient_a enchanter_n marcus_n to_o be_v the_o first_o author_n and_o patron_n hereof_o especial_o see_v irenaeus_n speak_v of_o he_o in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o the_o foresay_a book_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v secret_o direct_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophesy_n say_v thas_o he_o be_v verè_fw-la praecursor_fw-la antichristi_fw-la that_o be_v true_o antichrist_n forerunner_n yet_o how_o notable_o soever_o this_o marcus_n cause_v many_o simple_a person_n in_o his_o time_n to_o believe_v his_o transubstantiation_n of_o wine_n into_o the_o blood_n of_o grace_n yet_o he_o be_v so_o bait_v detect_v &_o confound_v for_o his_o lewd_a and_o cozen_a deal_v therein_o and_o in_o other_o point_n by_o irenaeus_n epiphanius_n and_o other_o that_o howsoever_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n antichrist_n his_o successor_n be_v busy_a under_o leo_n the_o 9_o in_o a_o council_n at_o vercellis_n and_o after_o in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n under_o nicholas_n the_o 2._o about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o lord_n 1060._o in_o bring_v berengarius_fw-la to_o recantation_n to_o revive_v again_o this_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n yet_o as_o their_o own_o friend_n confess_v &_o namely_o tonstall_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n it_o can_v not_o nor_o be_v not_o decree_v for_o a_o certain_a and_o universal_a doctrine_n before_o innocent_a the_o three_o time_n in_o another_o council_n at_o lateran_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 1215._o before_o which_o council_n the_o greek_a church_n have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o latin_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o doctrine_n not_o receive_v as_o catholic_a before_o that_o division_n never_o since_o can_v it_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o greek_a church_n for_o any_o catholic_a truth_n how_o can_v it_o then_o have_v countenance_n of_o all_o christian_a region_n and_o time_n bertram_z berengarius_fw-la &_o the_o waldense_n in_o sundry_a place_n by_o writing_n &_o speak_v oppose_v themselves_o against_o it_o as_o witness_v bertram_n book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o condemnation_n of_o berengarius_fw-la opinion_n about_o it_o at_o vercellis_n and_o the_o article_n of_o the_o waldense_n yea_o a_o little_a before_o and_o in_o this_o pope_n innocent_n time_n a_o certain_a people_n about_o john_n de_fw-fr albines_n tolossa_n call_v albigenses_n and_o that_o in_o great_a &_o mighty_a multitude_n as_o the_o french_a chronicle_n show_v deny_v real_a presence_n of_o christ_n under_o or_o with_o the_o outward_a element_n in_o this_o sacrament_n in_o somuch_o as_o great_a war_n be_v raise_v to_o subdue_v they_o but_o of_o this_o matter_n also_o i_o have_v speak_v so_o much_o chapter_n eleven_o &_o 17._o that_o here_o i_o need_v thereof_o say_v no_o more_o now_o touch_v image_n or_o idol_n and_o the_o worship_v thereof_o i_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o for_o their_o deal_n about_o they_o they_o may_v very_o well_o pretend_v both_o antiquity_n and_o universality_n for_o it_o appear_v in_o all_o story_n and_o in_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o that_o that_o way_n not_o only_o all_o other_o nation_n but_o also_o even_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n themselves_o have_v be_v always_o wonderful_o give_v to_o pollute_v and_o defile_v themselves_o but_o withal_o it_o appear_v that_o god_n in_o his_o word_n write_v against_o no_o abomination_n have_v cry_v out_o either_o more_o often_o or_o more_o vehement_o then_o against_o this_o but_o among_o christian_n the_o first_o that_o we_o read_v of_o that_o worship_v the_o image_n of_o jesus_n or_o any_o other_o be_v marcellina_n a_o filthy_a companion_n of_o the_o fantastical_a heretic_n carpocrates_n but_o both_o in_o epiphanius_n heresi_fw-la 27._o and_o in_o augustine_n ad_fw-la quod_fw-la vult_fw-la deum_fw-la we_o find_v this_o both_o note_v &_o condemn_v among_o other_o detestable_a error_n of_o the_o carpocratian_o this_o carpocrates_n live_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o antoninus_n pius_n anicet_fw-la then_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o lord_n 109._o and_o in_o origens_n time_n who_o die_v as_o spanhemensis_n say_v in_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 261._o he_o in_o his_o seven_o book_n to_o celsus_n note_v that_o then_o the_o christian_n neither_o suffer_v image_n nor_o pillar_n to_o be_v worship_v likewise_o in_o arnobius_n adversus_fw-la gentes_fw-la who_o flourish_v about_o the_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o gentiles_n object_v that_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o disgrace_n against_o the_o christian_n that_o they_o neither_o have_v nor_o worship_v any_o such_o but_o so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o the_o christian_n they_o think_v it_o any_o disgrace_n unto_o they_o that_o origen_n in_o the_o place_n before_o quote_v say_v that_o the_o jew_n &_o christian_n hear_v the_o law_n exo._n 20._o not_o only_o refuse_v image_n of_o god_n choose_v rather_o to_o die_v then_o to_o make_v or_o worship_v any_o such_o add_v this_o as_o a_o reason_n that_o god_n be_v invisible_a &_o without_o body_n and_o likewise_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n who_o flourish_v 100_o year_n before_o origen_n in_o his_o exhortation_n to_o the_o heathen_a confess_v willing_o this_o their_o objection_n to_o be_v true_a that_o christian_n have_v no_o image_n that_o may_v be_v discern_v by_o sense_n but_o only_o by_o understanding_n because_o to_o use_v that_o deceitful_a art_n say_v he_o be_v forbid_v they_o yea_o and_o that_o christian_n and_o their_o temple_n may_v continue_v still_o free_a from_o they_o in_o constantine_n time_n in_o a_o council_n hold_v in_o spain_n at_o eliberis_n can_v 36._o it_o be_v decree_v thus_o it_o have_v please_v we_o to_o determine_v that_o no_o picture_n shall_v be_v suffer_v in_o church_n lest_o that_o which_o be_v worship_v or_o adore_v shall_v be_v paint_v in_o wall_n isid_n tom_fw-mi 1._o conci_fw-la and_o therefore_o epiphaniꝰ_n 55._o year_n after_o this_o council_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 390._o as_o it_o appear_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o john_n of_o jerusalem_fw-la find_v in_o the_o entrance_n of_o the_o church_n at_o anablatha_n in_o that_o johns_n diocese_n the_o image_n of_o a_o man_n picture_v on_o a_o cloth_n there_o hang_v pull_v it_o down_o &_o tear_v it_o asunder_o &_o write_v to_o the_o foresay_a john_n about_o it_o though_o as_o he_o confess_v it_o seem_v unto_o he_o that_o it_o be_v make_v for_o
the_o picture_n of_o jesus_n or_o soon_o of_o the_o saint_n yet_o he_o condemn_v it_o as_o contrary_a both_o to_o the_o scripture_n and_o christian_a religion_n &_o therefore_o persuade_v he_o not_o to_o suffer_v any_o such_o thing_n any_o more_o for_o it_o become_v he_o to_o banish_v such_o superstition_n which_o be_v unseemly_a for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n yea_o lactantius_n lib._n 2_o cap._n 19_o of_o his_o divine_a institution_n say_v flat_o that_o their_o can_v be_v no_o religion_n where_o there_o be_v a_o image_n he_o live_v &_o flourish_v in_o the_o year_n 320._o and_o s_o augustine_n who_o live_v after_o all_o these_o before_o name_v for_o he_o die_v not_o before_o the_o year_n 430._o de_fw-la consensu_fw-la euangelistarum_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap_n 2._o write_v that_o they_o even_o deserve_v to_o err_v which_o seek_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n not_o in_o book_n but_o in_o paint_a wall_n yea_o gregory_n the_o great_a as_o they_o call_v he_o bishop_n of_o rome_n though_o they_o the_o paint_n of_o story_n for_o a_o ornament_n of_o the_o church_n be_v think_v tolerable_a yet_o he_o lib._n 7._o epist_n 109._o &_o lib._n 9_o epist_n 9_o to_o serenus_n slat_o condemn_v the_o adore_a &_o worship_v of_o image_n and_o whereas_o by_o occasion_n of_o this_o tolerate_n of_o historical_a paint_n of_o they_o through_o the_o superstition_n &_o corruption_n of_o man_n nature_n within_o short_a time_n by_o little_a &_o little_a the_o worship_v of_o they_o grow_v to_o be_v too_o much_o use_v &_o like_v of_o many_o especial_o in_o these_o western_a part_n &_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o by_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 700._o the_o emperor_n leo_n the_o three_o in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n consist_v of_o 330._o bishop_n there_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o that_o council_n decree_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v quite_o remove_v out_o of_o church_n &_o burn_v &_o severe_o he_o punish_v those_o which_o notwithstanding_o will_v persevere_v in_o the_o worship_v of_o they_o and_o the_o same_o course_n take_v his_o successor_n constantine_n by_o another_o great_a council_n hold_v their_o ratify_v the_o former_a &_o two_o emperor_n more_o succeed_v he_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o while_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o stand_v they_o what_o they_o may_v &_o decree_v as_o fast_o for_o the_o retain_v &_o worship_v of_o they_o as_o they_o can_v as_o it_o appear_v in_o sigebert_n blondus_n &_o other_o howbeit_o though_o also_o in_o the_o time_n of_o irene_n &_o the_o nonage_n of_o her_o son_n constantine_n in_o the_o east_n through_o the_o suggestion_n of_o therasius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n they_o get_v there_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o nicaea_n consist_v of_o three_o hundred_o &_o fifty_o bishop_n where_o to_o curry_v favour_n again_o with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o upon_o the_o former_a occasion_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o sigebert_n &_o other_o have_v be_v a_o shrewd_a traitorous_a mean_n to_o cause_v these_o western_a part_n to_o revolt_v from_o the_o empire_n they_o decree_v according_a to_o their_o humour_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o image_n yet_o africa_n &_o asia_n the_o great_a can_v never_o be_v bring_v to_o receive_v those_o canon_n there_o make_v yea_o &_o that_o more_o be_v though_o by_o that_o time_n the_o pope_n have_v make_v charles_n the_o great_a very_o much_o behold_v to_o he_o in_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o translate_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n unto_o he_o so_o be_v those_o canon_n in_o this_o point_n mislike_v &_o contradict_v here_o in_o thes_n western_a part_n that_o a_o council_n in_o his_o time_n &_o by_o his_o mean_n as_o the_o emperor_n be_v call_v at_o francford_n whereunto_o come_v many_o bishop_n of_o italy_n france_n germany_n &_o other_o country_n yet_o there_o even_o for_o this_o point_n be_v that_o council_n of_o nice_a reject_v &_o conden_v as_o a_o wicked_a council_n witness_n both_o regino_n lib._n 2._o anno_fw-la 794._o &_o also_o one_o hinckmare_n not_o long_o after_o those_o time_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n write_v against_o another_o of_o his_o name_n they_o bishop_n of_o jandune_n or_o lavedune_n as_o some_o call_v it_o ca._n 20._o where_o he_o for_o further_a proof_n of_o this_o to_o be_v true_a write_v that_o the_o bishop_n their_o assemble_v cause_v a_o book_n of_o purpose_n to_o be_v write_v &_o send_v to_o rome_n contain_v at_o large_a a_o confutation_n of_o all_o the_o reason_n use_v for_o image_n at_o nicaea_n which_o in_o his_o young_a year_n he_o see_v &_o which_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o pope_n library_n augustine_n steuchus_n confess_v to_o lie_v there_o write_v in_o ancient_a character_n the_o donatione_n constantini_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 59_o nu_fw-la 60._o and_o roger_n hovoden_n who_o live_v 400._o year_n ago_o in_o his_o continuation_n of_o bedeas_n story_n in_o the_o year_n 792._o show_v how_o charles_n send_v the_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n of_o nice_a hither_o wherein_o as_o he_o say_v it_o be_v decree_v that_o image_n ought_v to_o be_v adore_v which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n utter_o detest_v report_v that_o one_o albirus_n here_o write_v a_o epistle_n against_o that_o determination_n marvellous_o ground_v upon_o the_o scripture_n which_o he_o carry_v into_o france_n as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o bishop_n by_o occasion_n whereof_o the_o rather_o it_o shall_v seem_v short_o after_o charles_n think_v meet_v to_o call_v the_o foresay_a council_n at_o francford_n all_o these_o thing_n notwithstanding_o never_o be_v image_n pillar_n and_o cross_n more_o idolatrous_o decree_v to_o be_v worship_v their_o nor_o ever_o be_v idol_n more_o gross_o adore_v of_o heretic_n or_o the_o very_a pagan_n and_o heathen_a than_o they_o have_v be_v &_o yet_o be_v of_o superstitious_a papist_n for_o they_o crouch_v &_o kneel_v unto_o they_o present_a offering_n before_o they_o they_o run_v a_o pilgrimage_n unto_o they_o and_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o that_o honour_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o who_o image_n and_o monument_n they_o be_v though_o in_o a_o other_o manner_n not_o for_o their_o own_o sake_n but_o for_o they_o who_o remembrance_n they_o be_v but_o indeed_o if_o in_o worship_v of_o they_o they_o do_v not_o principal_o respect_v the_o image_n themselves_o why_o shall_v there_o not_o be_v as_o great_a devotion_n as_o many_o pilgrimage_n &_o as_o great_a offering_n present_v &_o yield_v to_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n mary_n or_o of_o any_o other_o aswell_o in_o one_o place_n as_o in_o a_o other_o well_o howsoever_o they_o will_v do_v wicked_o herein_o and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v seek_v to_o colour_v the_o matter_n such_o in_o truth_n all_o the_o world_n see_v herein_o have_v be_v their_o deal_n that_o euthymius_n in_o his_o panoply_n have_v never_o more_o cause_v to_o name_v the_o armenian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v idolater_n to_o the_o cross_n for_o their_o gross_a and_o superstitious_a worship_v of_o it_o than_o we_o have_v general_o to_o count_v and_o call_v the_o romanist_n flat_a idolater_n for_o their_o behaviour_n towards_o it_o and_o other_o image_n also_o thus_o then_o hope_v by_o this_o that_o i_o have_v say_v concern_v this_o point_n that_o not_o only_o thou_o may_v see_v goodreader_n when_o and_o how_o this_o point_n of_o popery_n first_o come_v in_o but_o how_o and_o by_o who_o it_o have_v be_v oppugn_v but_o consequent_o also_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v herein_o destitute_a both_o of_o scripture_n father_n consent_n of_o christian_a region_n and_o all_o that_o she_o brag_v of_o let_v we_o see_v if_o we_o can_v show_v the_o like_a concern_v the_o other_o point_n of_o force_a single_a life_n upon_o the_o clergy_n which_o she_o hold_v to_o be_v so_o necessary_a and_o holy_a a_o ordinance_n as_o that_o by_o no_o mean_n without_o deadly_a sin_n it_o may_v be_v transgress_v even_o in_o this_o as_o in_o the_o former_a if_o we_o search_v the_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n well_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o have_v very_o ancient_a heretic_n to_o be_v their_o first_o father_n &_o leader_n for_o the_o tacianist_n common_o call_v encratites_n of_o their_o abstinence_n from_o marriage_n &_o certain_a other_o thing_n who_o begin_v about_o the_o year_n one_o hundred_o forty_o two_o be_v great_a condemner_n of_o marriage_n as_o appear_v in_o aug._n ad_fw-la quodvult_fw-la deum_fw-la &_o in_o epiphanius_n write_v of_o they_o heresi_n 46._o after_o they_o spring_v up_o the_o manichee_n who_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v enemy_n to_o marriage_n but_o not_o so_o universal_o as_o the_o former_a for_o they_o permit_v it_o to_o other_o and_o restrain_v only_o their_o clergy_n from_o it_o who_o they_o call_v their_o elect_a as_o august_n witness_v of_o they_o epist_n 74._o but_o indeed_o as_o many_o as_o
catholic_a faith_n catholic_a bishop_n succeed_v one_o another_o when_o as_o indeed_o and_o truth_n it_o be_v as_o impossible_a for_o you_o to_o prove_v that_o you_o have_v any_o just_a right_n to_o any_o of_o these_o as_o it_o be_v for_o those_o heretic_n but_o howsoever_o you_o make_v some_o believe_v you_o have_v all_o these_o yet_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o with_o saint_n august_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la against_o the_o epistle_n of_o petilian_n chap._n 10._o that_o even_o catholic_a bishop_n be_v not_o to_o be_v consent_v unto_o if_o that_o any_o where_o they_o be_v deceive_v in_o think_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o and_o when_o otherwise_o you_o have_v run_v yourselves_o out_o of_o breath_n in_o conclusion_n will_v you_o will_v you_o by_o these_o canonical_a scripture_n must_v it_o be_v determine_v whither_o you_o have_v any_o right_n to_o any_o of_o these_o or_o no._n for_o if_o you_o appeal_v from_o they_o as_o indeed_o you_o do_v to_o the_o church_n and_o father_n they_o will_v send_v you_o back_o again_o for_o the_o trial_n whither_o that_o which_o they_o speak_v be_v true_a or_o no_o only_o to_o the_o scripture_n as_o it_o may_v appear_v unto_o you_o not_o only_o by_o this_o one_o place_n which_o i_o have_v cite_v out_o of_o augustine_n already_o but_o also_o by_o a_o number_n such_o like_a place_n both_o to_o be_v find_v in_o he_o else_o where_o and_o also_o in_o other_o for_o you_o may_v read_v in_o the_o first_o book_n and_o seven_o chapter_n of_o theodoret_n that_o when_o constantine_n see_v great_a controversy_n in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o perceave_v that_o every_o several_a company_n brag_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o so_o also_o of_o the_o church_n and_o father_n to_o be_v on_o their_o side_n to_o end_v all_o those_o controversy_n he_o say_v exit_fw-la divinitus_fw-la inspiratis_fw-la oraculis_fw-la quaeramus_fw-la solutionem_fw-la eorum_fw-la quae_fw-la proponuntur_fw-la that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o oracle_n that_o be_v come_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n thereby_o mean_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n let_v we_o seek_v the_o determination_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v propound_v and_o so_o they_o do_v and_o as_o constantine_n the_o emperor_n be_v of_o this_o mind_n so_o it_o appear_v that_o athanasius_n be_v of_o the_o same_o for_o to_o serap_v he_o say_v solum_fw-la exsacris_fw-la literis_fw-la condiscas_fw-la meaning_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n sufficiunt_fw-la enim_fw-la documenta_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o illis_fw-la reperias_fw-la thou_o may_v learn_v it_o only_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o document_n or_o lesson_n which_o thou_o may_v find_v in_o they_o be_v sufficient_a and_o origen_n upon_o the_o 16._o to_o the_o roman_n in_o his_o ten_o book_n agree_v herein_o with_o these_o say_v that_o only_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o difference_n of_o truth_n from_o error_n in_o the_o examination_n thereof_o be_v to_o be_v discern_v and_o yet_o more_o plain_o the_o same_o origen_n in_o his_o first_o homily_n upon_o jeremie_n write_v of_o necessity_n we_o must_v call_v for_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o our_o sense_n and_o declaration_n without_o they_o as_o witness_n have_v no_o credit_n well_o therefore_o say_v augustine_n de_fw-fr naturâ_fw-la &_o gratiâ_fw-la cap._n 61._o only_o to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v i_o owe_v my_o consent_n without_o refusal_n and_o therefore_o francke_o he_o tell_v hierome_n in_o his_o nineteenth_o epistle_n that_o he_o have_v learned_a to_o yield_v that_o honour_n only_o to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n to_o think_v that_o the_o author_n thereof_o therein_o never_o err_v where_o he_o plain_o show_v we_o by_o his_o example_n how_o we_o shall_v read_v his_o writing_n or_o the_o writing_n of_o any_o other_o father_n namely_o believe_v that_o which_o they_o write_v no_o further_o than_o we_o see_v it_o by_o scripture_n confirm_v or_o by_o probable_a argument_n not_o dissent_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o like_a he_o teach_v yet_o more_o plain_o in_o his_o 111._o &_o 112._o epistle_n to_o fortunatus_n and_o paulinus_n &_o in_o the_o proem_n of_o the_o three_o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n wherefore_o with_o the_o same_o augustine_n i_o confident_o say_v and_o write_v whither_o of_o christ_n or_o of_o his_o church_n or_o of_o any_o thing_n that_o appertain_v to_o our_o faith_n and_o life_n i_o will_v not_o say_v we_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o he_o that_o say_v though_o we_o but_o as_o he_o add_v though_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v preach_v any_o thing_n beside_o that_o you_o have_v receive_v mark_v he_o say_v not_o contrary_a but_o beside_o in_o the_o legal_a and_o evangelicall_a scripture_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v in_o his_o three_o book_n against_o petilian_n cap._n 6._o yea_o your_o own_o vincentius_n in_o the_o very_a place_n quote_v by_o you_o deny_v not_o but_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o the_o scripture_n of_o themselves_o alone_o be_v sufficient_a for_o all_o thing_n yea_o and_o more_o than_o sufficient_a whereupon_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o vincentius_n by_o the_o rule_n line_n and_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o there_o he_o speak_v of_o understand_v only_o such_o a_o sense_n or_o line_n as_o agree_v best_a with_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o and_o the_o right_a rule_n of_o the_o interpret_n of_o they_o whereof_o more_o afterward_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n howsoever_o vincentius_n his_o meaning_n be_v augustine_n a_o ancient_a father_n &_o more_o famous_a somewhat_o then_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o always_o in_o interpret_n of_o the_o scripture_n man_n must_v have_v a_o eye_n unto_o and_o be_v rule_v by_o say_v that_o it_o be_v even_o that_o which_o be_v teach_v in_o plain_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n de_fw-la doctrinâ_fw-la christia_n lib_n 3._o cap._n 2._o &_o the_o trini_z lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o &_o 4._o yea_o in_o the_o same_o augustine_n the_o doct_n christ_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 6._o &_o distrinc_fw-la 37._o c._n relatum_fw-la we_o may_v read_v note_v out_o of_o clement_n that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o receive_v any_o fence_n for_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o can_v be_v prove_v so_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o and_o therefore_o all_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n new_a or_o ancient_a deliver_v by_o the_o father_n in_o former_a time_n or_o receive_v of_o their_o child_n of_o this_o late_a age_n must_v and_o aught_o according_a to_o this_o rule_n and_o line_n be_v judge_v catholic_a or_o not_o the_o four_o chapter_n 1._o cant._n 1._o whose_o discourse_n do_v make_v i_o remember_v the_o complaint_n that_o the_o soul_n do_v make_v unto_o her_o spouse_n jesus_n christ_n be_v both_o represent_v by_o solomon_n and_o his_o legitimate_a spouse_n i_o pray_v thou_o say_v she_o o_o my_o dear_a friend_n tell_v i_o in_o what_o place_n thou_o do_v lie_v and_o rest_n at_o no●●_n day_n for_o i_o will_v be_v very_o glad_a and_o desirous_a to_o follow_v the_o flock_n of_o thy_o fellow_n the_o which_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o if_o she_o mean_v thus_o i_o see_v many_o shepherd_n in_o these_o mountain_n which_o have_v great_a abundance_n of_o sheep_n i_o see_v those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o see_v donatist_n i_o see_v novatians_n or_o to_o speak_v of_o our_o time_n i_o see_v one_o flock_n follow_v luther_n another_o follow_n sort_n follow_n the_o caluenist_n zwinglians_n and_o sacramentary_n be_v common_o among_o you_o take_v for_o one_o yet_o here_o that_o the_o variety_n of_o opinion_n may_v seem_v the_o great_a you_o reckon_v they_o up_o as_o three_o distinct_a sort_n zuinglius_fw-la another_o follow_v caluin_n another_o the_o anabaptist_n another_o the_o sacramentary_n &_o so_o forth_o diverse_a other_o of_o who_o when_o i_o demand_v particular_o who_o be_v this_o flock_n they_o do_v all_o answer_v i_o it_o be_v of_o christ_n &_o every_o 〈◊〉_d say_v this_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n every_o one_o do_v say_v that_o he_o be_v his_o fellow_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o touch_v the_o guide_n of_o his_o flock_n now_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o they_o do_v all_o teach_v the_o truth_n consider_v how_o they_o vary_v among_o themselves_o therefore_o i_o do_v desire_n thou_o to_o tell_v i_o where_o thou_o do_v rest_v thyself_o at_o noon_n day_n that_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v teach_v i_o which_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n which_o do_v celebrate_v the_o true_a mystery_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v the_o place_n where_o thou_o be_v nail_v at_o noon_n day_n be_v nail_v both_o hand_n and_o foot_n hear_v now_o the_o answer_n of_o jesus_n christ_n if_o thou_o do_v not_o know_v the_o place_n
suffer_v their_o chronicler_n to_o mention_v they_o or_o else_o in_o cause_v they_o to_o deface_v they_o with_o strange_a name_n and_o false_a slander_n make_v it_o very_o hard_a yea_o if_o impossible_a not_o marvel_v you_o have_v the_o evidence_n whereby_o we_o shall_v do_v it_o for_o the_o most_o part_n a_o long_a time_n in_o your_o own_o keep_n to_o use_v at_o your_o own_o pleasure_n for_o we_o to_o name_n from_o time_n to_o time_n the_o place_n and_o person_n that_o have_v always_o succeed_v one_o another_o for_o the_o continuance_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o church_n but_o to_o return_v again_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o this_o place_n of_o the_o canticle_n further_o i_o say_v as_o i_o say_v before_o that_o you_o err_v in_o allege_v this_o or_o any_o other_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n may_v safe_o account_v those_o flock_n in_o possession_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v follow_v and_o those_o shepherd_n true_a shepherd_n and_o therefore_o meet_v always_o to_o be_v consent_v unto_o that_o lineal_o down_o from_o christ_n can_v deduce_v their_o personal_a succession_n for_o so_o as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n and_o it_o be_v not_o deny_v of_o yourselves_o sundry_a heretic_n in_o their_o time_n have_v do_v and_o can_v do_v still_o if_o therefore_o you_o say_v you_o mean_v still_o that_o flock_n and_o those_o shepherd_n that_o together_o with_o their_o visible_a personal_a succession_n have_v always_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o true_a ancient_a faith_n i_o answer_v first_o you_o beg_v still_o the_o thing_n in_o question_n in_o suppose_v that_o to_o have_v be_v always_o join_v with_o your_o flock_n and_o shepherd_n which_o we_o say_v and_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v they_o fall_v from_o many_o hundred_o year_n ago_o second_o i_o tell_v you_o once_o again_o and_o now_o this_o time_n for_o all_o that_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v but_o that_o both_o that_o personal_a succession_n may_v be_v separate_v from_o truth_n and_o also_o truth_n from_o it_o and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v neither_o a_o certain_a mean_n to_o know_v the_o truth_n nor_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o three_o for_o your_o collection_n out_o of_o this_o place_n for_o the_o justify_n of_o your_o church_n before_o we_o because_o as_o you_o say_v from_o time_n to_o time_n for_o this_o thousand_o and_o five_o hundred_o year_n you_o can_v show_v the_o descent_n and_o continuance_n of_o you_o and_o we_o can_v of_o we_o for_o one_o hundred_o year_n no_o not_o beyond_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o and_o seventeen_o we_o affirm_v that_o both_o in_o the_o one_o and_o in_o the_o other_o herein_o you_o write_v untrue_o for_o first_o if_o your_o church_n as_o it_o be_v now_o either_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o doctrine_n or_o government_n thereof_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o ancient_a roman_a church_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n or_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o there_o be_v such_o diversity_n betwixt_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o as_o that_o the_o one_o be_v find_v the_o chaste_a spouse_n of_o christ_n the_o other_o must_v needs_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o very_a whoar_n of_o babylon_n the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o ministry_n that_o then_o be_v be_v turn_v among_o you_o into_o a_o pompous_a lordly_a and_o more_o than_o princely_a prelacy_n and_o then_o the_o church_n be_v feed_v with_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o lead_v thereby_o perfect_o to_o understand_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o with_o you_o as_o careful_o as_o may_v be_v that_o be_v keep_v from_o she_o and_o in_o steed_n thereof_o she_o be_v feed_v with_o the_o dream_n invention_n and_o tradition_n of_o man_n then_o she_o be_v teach_v to_o account_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n the_o only_a name_n whereby_o come_v salvation_n act._n 4._o and_o therefore_o that_o in_o he_o all_o thing_n be_v prepare_v math._n 22._o and_o now_o with_o you_o beside_o he_o saint_n angel_n your_o own_o merit_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o other_o satisfaction_n in_o this_o life_n by_o yourselves_o and_o after_o by_o other_o with_o a_o number_n of_o base_a thing_n must_v join_v with_o he_o in_o the_o office_n of_o intercession_n betwixt_o we_o and_o god_n and_o in_o the_o most_o glorious_a work_n of_o our_o salvation_n as_o though_o he_o either_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o go_v perfect_o through_o with_o the_o work_n of_o our_o salvation_n in_o himself_o and_o by_o himself_o but_o have_v so_o begin_v it_o as_o that_o the_o accomplish_n and_o perfect_v thereof_o be_v leave_v to_o these_o vain_a and_o foolish_a bymeane_n then_o her_o faithful_a doctor_n and_o teacher_n teach_v she_o that_o christ_n in_o say_v hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la this_o be_v my_o body_n mean_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n &_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o augustine_n against_o adimantus_n the_o maniche_n cap._n 12._o and_o in_o tertull._n against_o martion_n cap._n 4._o and_o in_o infinite_a place_n elsewhere_o in_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o now_o contrary_a to_o nature_n yea_o to_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n contrary_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o good_a manner_n you_o teach_v that_o those_o word_n be_v utter_v by_o your_o priest_n thereupon_o follow_v such_o a_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o his_o body_n that_o whosoever_o receive_v the_o outward_a part_n of_o that_o sacrament_n receive_v in_o by_o his_o mouth_n the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n if_o thus_o i_o be_v dispose_v to_o go_v a_o long_a as_o far_o as_o i_o may_v and_o to_o lead_v the_o reader_n to_o a_o full_a view_n of_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o now_o be_v and_o that_o which_o have_v be_v i_o shall_v even_o therewith_o make_v a_o great_a book_n but_o further_a of_o these_o difference_n i_o have_v note_v as_o you_o may_v read_v chapter_n 19_o &_o 20._o and_o else_o where_o in_o this_o book_n and_o doctor_n fulke_n against_o stapletons_n fortress_n have_v note_v out_o of_o bede_n and_o other_o author_n of_o good_a credit_n 50._o difference_n betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o the_o english_a saxon_n in_o the_o time_n of_o augustine_n the_o monk_n who_o be_v 600._o year_n after_o christ_n at_o the_o least_o and_o the_o popish_a church_n that_o now_o be_v and_o infinite_a be_v the_o difference_n then_o betwixt_o the_o church_n before_o in_o her_o pu_a time_n and_o the_o popish_a synagogue_n now_o and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o you_o brag_v neither_o you_o nor_o all_o your_o fellow_n shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v indeed_o that_o your_o personal_a succession_n have_v be_v join_v with_o the_o continuance_n of_o one_o and_o selfsame_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n unto_o these_o day_n and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o other_o point_n therein_o i_o say_v you_o write_v untrue_o also_o for_o so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o we_o grant_v luther_n to_o have_v be_v the_o first_o that_o preach_v the_o gospel_n that_o we_o now_o embrace_v and_o that_o we_o can_v show_v by_o who_o and_o where_o it_o be_v preach_v and_o receive_v before_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o common_a with_o we_o in_o answer_v this_o your_o objection_n of_o newness_n then_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o it_o be_v new_a indeed_o that_o it_o be_v the_o very_a ancient_a religion_n and_o gospel_n teach_v both_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o new_a and_o therefore_o though_o it_o grieve_v you_o we_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o ancient_a patriarch_n and_o prophet_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v the_o very_a same_o and_o no_o other_o and_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o father_n as_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v that_o which_o they_o teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n be_v shepherd_n of_o our_o church_n and_o teacher_n of_o our_o religion_n indeed_o we_o confess_v that_o as_o hilkiah_n the_o priest_n in_o josiahs_n time_n 2._o king_n 22._o find_v the_o book_n of_o god_n and_o be_v so_o a_o mean_n to_o bring_v those_o thing_n to_o light_n that_o by_o the_o wicked_a proceed_n of_o manasses_n amon_n and_o other_o have_v for_o a_o certain_a season_n lie_v hide_v so_o luther_n in_o these_o late_a day_n be_v a_o singular_a instrument_n of_o god_n to_o revive_v and_o bring_v to_o light_v diverse_a point_n of_o christian_a faith_n which_o your_o antichristian_a synagogue_n have_v long_o labour_v to_o smother_v and_o hide_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o hereupon_o it_o no_o more_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o preach_v our_o religion_n then_o upon_o the_o former_a it_o follow_v that_o hilkiah_n be_v then_o first_o the_o
mean_n to_o preach_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o i_o tell_v you_o true_o that_o i_o can_v marvel_v yet_o sufficient_o that_o any_o man_n of_o any_o reason_n judgement_n and_o learning_n as_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v shall_v be_v so_o far_o past_o all_o shame_n as_o confident_o to_o set_v down_o in_o print_n that_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o luther_n 1517._o begin_n first_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n &_o that_o we_o can_v name_v none_o 100_o or_o 200._o year_n before_o that_o teach_v it_o when_o you_o can_v be_v ignorant_a unless_o your_o ignorance_n be_v very_o gross_a that_o we_o name_n unto_o you_o very_o many_o and_o that_o in_o all_o age_n to_o have_v be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o church_n that_o we_o be_v now_o of_o for_o first_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o usual_a with_o we_o then_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o all_o the_o ancient_a patriarch_n prophet_n evangelist_n and_o apostle_n witness_n the_o canonical_a scripture_n live_v and_o die_v in_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n the_o same_o opinion_n we_o tell_v you_o we_o have_v of_o all_o the_o christian_a martyr_n who_o number_n be_v infinite_a that_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n under_o the_o 10._o bloody_a persecution_n that_o be_v in_o that_o time_n for_o during_o that_o time_n our_o religion_n be_v only_o profess_v and_o embrace_v in_o the_o church_n and_o very_o little_a or_o nothing_o be_v there_o of_o those_o opinion_n for_o the_o which_o especial_o we_o account_v your_o religion_n antichristian_a unless_o it_o be_v of_o heretic_n and_o such_o as_o have_v learn_v it_o of_o they_o in_o those_o day_n once_o think_v of_o and_o after_o for_o three_o hundred_o year_n more_o at_o least_o in_o all_o the_o most_o substantial_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o great_a question_n betwixt_o we_o and_o you_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o the_o christian_n that_o live_v in_o their_o time_n as_o we_o have_v diverse_a time_n say_v so_o have_v we_o often_o so_o prove_v it_o that_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a therein_o to_o disprove_v we_o be_v full_o we_o and_o though_o after_o these_o time_n when_o boniface_n the_o three_o have_v once_o obtain_v of_o that_o traitorous_a murderer_n phocas_n the_o antichristian_a title_n of_o ecumenical_a or_o universal_a bishop_n the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n do_v every_o day_n work_v more_o plain_o than_o other_o &_o haste_v to_o his_o height_n yet_o as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o publisher_n preface_n and_o in_o the_o sixteenth_o chapter_n of_o this_o my_o answer_n to_o yourself_o where_o you_o brag_v again_o as_o you_o do_v here_o of_o 1500._o year_n antiquity_n and_o continuance_n there_o be_v after_o these_o time_n from_o time_n to_o time_n that_o both_o spy_v the_o growth_n and_o proceed_n thereof_o and_o set_v themselves_o against_o it_o for_o bertram_n &_o johannes_n scotus_n be_v with_o we_o against_o your_o gross_a real_a presence_n above_o 700._o year_n ago_o trithemius_n make_v mention_n of_o a_o book_n write_v 400._o year_n ago_o which_o be_v suppose_v be_v write_v by_o one_o arnulphus_n for_o as_o sabellicus_n and_o platina_n testify_v much_o about_o that_o time_n be_v he_o put_v to_o death_n of_o the_o romish_a clergy_n in_o which_o book_n the_o author_n grievous_o complain_v of_o the_o enormity_n among_o the_o say_v clergy_n and_o find_v many_o fault_n in_o the_o romish_a church_n gisburne_n also_o in_o his_o story_n write_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 1158._o dulcinus_n navarensis_n and_o gerrhardus_fw-la preach_v earnest_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o that_o they_o have_v thirty_o follower_n who_o they_o bring_v into_o england_n who_o be_v persecute_v then_o here_o for_o preach_v that_o and_o other_o such_o like_a doctrine_n against_o the_o romish_a church_n much_o about_o this_o time_n but_o somewhat_o rather_o before_o a_o company_n of_o christian_n who_o by_o your_o prelate_n be_v nickenamed_a albigenses_n do_v flourish_v and_o there_o be_v great_a multitude_n of_o they_o even_o about_o tholossa_n whereof_o you_o master_n albine_n be_v call_v archdeacon_n who_o do_v vehement_o resist_v your_o pope_n and_o his_o proceed_n set_v up_o unto_o themselves_o a_o bishop_n who_o they_o call_v bartholomew_n oppugn_v the_o gross_a point_n of_o your_o religion_n even_o as_o we_o do_v witness_n nicolas_n trivet_n and_o other_o in_o their_o story_n hildegarde_n though_o she_o be_v a_o nun_n yet_o in_o the_o year_n 1146._o prophesy_v the_o ruin_n of_o your_o kingdom_n at_o rome_n and_o bitter_o inveigh_v against_o the_o wickedness_n of_o your_o clergy_n and_o friar_n so_o do_v geoffrey_n chaucer_n about_o the_o same_o time_n namely_o in_o his_o dialogue_n call_v jacke_n vpland_n very_o salt_o taunt_v and_o deride_v the_o vanity_n of_o your_o frierly_a superstition_n in_o the_o year_n 1164._o be_v petrus_n valdus_n a_o citizen_n of_o lion_n who_o follower_n after_o have_v give_v they_o diverse_a name_n to_o disgrace_v they_o withal_o for_o your_o friend_n call_v they_o waldenses_n albigense_n pauperes_fw-la de_fw-fr lugduno_n picardo_n boslavienses_n thaboritas_fw-la and_o leonistas_n change_v their_o title_n and_o name_n according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o place_n and_o time_n they_o live_v in_o howsoever_o their_o religion_n be_v all_o one_o and_o these_o have_v be_v of_o ancient_a time_n and_o of_o great_a continuance_n in_o very_a many_o place_n namely_o in_o province_n sarmatia_n lyvonia_n bohemia_n moravia_n polonia_n silesia_n belgia_n and_o in_o calabria_n and_o of_o you_o wheresoever_o or_o whensoever_o they_o be_v they_o have_v be_v cruel_o persecute_v for_o heretic_n and_o yet_o if_o their_o opinion_n be_v judge_v of_o not_o as_o you_o the_o more_o to_o disgrace_v they_o have_v charge_v they_o but_o as_o they_o in_o their_o own_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o apology_n have_v set_v they_o down_o they_o in_o many_o thing_n hold_v the_o very_a same_o that_o we_o do_v and_o condemn_v the_o same_o for_o error_n in_o you_o that_o we_o now_o do_v they_o be_v of_o 400._o year_n continuance_n at_o least_o for_o aeneas_n silvius_n a_o man_n of_o your_o own_o for_o he_o be_v pope_n ere_o he_o die_v write_v handle_v the_o story_n of_o boeme_n that_o they_o have_v continue_v unto_o his_o time_n from_o the_o year_n 1160._o and_o gulielmus_fw-la paruus_fw-la write_v that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v examine_v in_o oxford_n and_o find_v sound_n concern_v god_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n for_o your_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o iorn_v of_o our_o own_o merit_n with_o christ_n to_o make_v up_o full_a satisfaction_n and_o redemption_n be_v of_o far_o late_a invention_n and_o their_o life_n say_v he_o be_v commendable_a but_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o be_v find_v to_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yea_o reinerus_n a_o writer_n 300._o year_n ago_o who_o as_o he_o himself_o say_v be_v often_o at_o the_o examination_n of_o they_o in_o his_o book_n of_o inquisition_n write_v of_o they_o calling_z they_o leonist_n confess_v that_o some_o say_v they_o have_v continue_v from_o syluester_n time_n and_o that_o some_o say_v they_o have_v be_v even_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o he_o further_o report_n that_o they_o have_v great_a show_n of_o holy_a life_n in_o live_v just_o before_o man_n and_o that_o they_o believe_v all_o thing_n well_o of_o god_n and_o all_o the_o article_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n only_o he_o charge_v they_o that_o they_o hate_v &_o blaspheme_v the_o romish_a church_n and_o this_o he_o further_o write_v that_o there_o be_v no_o land_n wherein_o that_o sect_n do_v not_o creep_v &_o speak_v but_o of_o they_o that_o be_v they_o but_o in_o one_o country_n yet_o this_o he_o testify_v that_o they_o have_v there_o ten_o school_n in_o one_o parish_n call_v camach_n that_o there_o be_v forty_o congregation_n or_o church_n of_o they_o every_o one_o have_v their_o leader_n or_o teacher_n and_o that_o their_o power_n in_o his_o time_n be_v such_o that_o none_o as_o he_o say_v dare_v then_o open_o resist_v they_o there_o be_v yet_o to_o be_v see_v as_o good_a author_n report_n the_o consultation_n and_o record_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o four_o great_a bishop_n in_o france_n against_o they_o write_v three_o hundred_o year_n ago_o namely_o of_o narbonensis_n arelatensis_fw-la aquensis_n and_o albanensis_fw-la yea_o 355._o year_n ago_o i_o read_v there_o be_v a_o council_n keep_v in_o tholossa_n especial_o against_o they_o and_o yet_o though_o both_o of_o ancient_a time_n and_o late_a day_n the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n have_v seek_v to_o root_v they_o out_o by_o all_o possible_a cruelty_n they_o and_o their_o successor_n continue_v unto_o this_o day_n in_o great_a number_n in_o bohemia_n and_o in_o other_o place_n but_o because_o you_o very_o
oft_o in_o this_o your_o book_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o side_n continual_o bear_v the_o simple_a reader_n and_o unlearned_a christian_a in_o hand_n that_o before_o luther_n there_o be_v none_o of_o our_o religion_n that_o have_v so_o condemn_v your_o church_n and_o religion_n as_o we_o do_v i_o will_v vouchsafe_v for_o the_o better_a enable_v of_o every_o one_o that_o shall_v read_v this_o my_o answer_n to_o see_v your_o vanity_n and_o impiety_n though_o this_o which_o i_o have_v note_v already_o be_v sufficient_a to_o lay_v open_a your_o folly_n to_o proceed_v yet_o somewhat_o further_o in_o this_o matter_n wherefore_o to_o go_v on_o in_o the_o course_n of_o time_n though_o your_o popish_a church_n have_v be_v in_o her_o ruff_n and_o at_o the_o high_o that_o ever_o she_o be_v this_o latter_a 400_o year_n yet_o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v that_o there_o have_v be_v many_o even_o in_o this_o time_n from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o that_o in_o sundry_a place_n that_o have_v join_v with_o we_o against_o you_o &_o that_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o such_o newness_n or_o strangeness_n in_o our_o religion_n a_o do_v do_n as_o you_o will_v make_v the_o ignorant_a believe_v for_o in_o the_o day_n of_o gregory_n the_o 9_o in_o the_o year_n 1230_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o other_o eastern_a church_n do_v quite_o forsake_v communion_n with_o you_o who_o ever_o since_o join_v with_o we_o in_o a_o number_n of_o thing_n against_o you_o as_o namely_o in_o withstand_v the_o supremacy_n of_o your_o romish_a bishop_n as_o appear_v not_o only_o by_o one_o epistle_n that_o germanus_n petriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v unto_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o year_n 1237_o but_o also_o by_o a_o large_a book_n write_v about_o the_o year_n 1384_o by_o nilus_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n wherein_o he_o do_v not_o only_o confute_v his_o supremacy_n even_o as_o we_o do_v but_o also_o he_o enueigh_v against_o all_o those_o that_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o popish_a or_o latin_a church_n and_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o ancient_a record_n in_o the_o church_n of_o herford_n wherein_o 29_o of_o the_o article_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v set_v down_o they_o join_v not_o only_o with_o we_o in_o this_o point_n in_o separate_a themselves_o from_o the_o romish_a church_n &_o in_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n which_o be_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o your_o church_n and_o religion_n but_o also_o in_o deny_v purgatory_n and_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o hold_v it_o lawful_a for_o their_o minister_n to_o enjoy_v the_o benefit_n of_o matrimony_n in_o not_o use_v any_o private_a mass_n in_o not_o deny_v the_o cup_n to_o any_o that_o receive_v in_o not_o minister_a the_o communion_n in_o private_a house_n in_o not_o use_v extreme_a unction_n and_o in_o sundry_a other_o point_n and_o by_o diverse_a epistle_n write_v from_o thence_o of_o late_a extant_a in_o print_n both_o in_o greek_a and_o latin_a to_o chitreus_n and_o other_o german_n it_o evident_o appear_v that_o they_o join_v with_o we_o against_o the_o romish_a church_n in_o many_o other_o great_a and_o weighty_a point_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o that_o great_a hope_n there_o be_v that_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v bring_v to_o join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o rest_n beside_o these_o eastern_a church_n even_o here_o in_o these_o western_a part_n evident_a it_o be_v that_o there_o have_v be_v many_o great_a learned_a and_o famous_a person_n with_o innumerable_a follower_n at_o all_o time_n from_o age_n to_o age_n in_o these_o latter_a 400_o year_n when_o the_o tyranny_n of_o your_o pope_n to_z repress_v they_o have_v be_v the_o great_a and_o strong_a that_o ever_o it_o be_v which_o yet_o have_v open_o with_o we_o stand_v forth_o against_o they_o and_o their_o religion_n for_o frederick_n the_o second_o as_o diverse_a other_o emperor_n have_v be_v before_o he_o as_o namely_o constantine_n the_o 5._o leo_n his_o son_n and_o constantine_n the_o 6_o in_o the_o east_n and_o henry_n the_o 4_o and_o 5_o in_o the_o west_n be_v a_o notable_a antagonist_n of_o the_o 3_o pope_n in_o his_o time_n contend_v against_o they_o to_o maintain_v the_o authority_n of_o christian_a prince_n against_o their_o usurp_a supremacy_n over_o they_o about_o the_o year_n 1260_o as_o notorious_o the_o chronicle_n of_o those_o time_n write_v by_o your_o own_o man_n platina_n sabelicus_n and_o other_o declare_v and_o 20_o year_n before_o that_o krantzius_n testify_v in_o his_o history_n that_o there_o be_v many_o that_o preach_v open_o in_o suevia_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o heretic_n his_o clergy_n symoniake_v and_o general_o they_o all_o seducer_n of_o the_o people_n ten_o year_n after_o that_o flourish_v arnoldus_fw-la de_n nouâ_fw-la villâ_fw-la a_o spaniard_n who_o teach_v that_o satan_n have_v they_o seduce_v the_o world_n that_o the_o faith_n they_o teach_v be_v but_o such_o as_o devil_n have_v mean_v belike_o a_o bare_a historical_a faith_n that_o the_o pope_n lead_v man_n to_o hell_n that_o he_o and_o his_o clergy_n do_v falsify_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n that_o mass_n be_v naught_o &_o not_o to_o be_v say_v for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o your_o popish_a church_n condemn_v he_o for_o a_o heretic_n much_o what_o about_o the_o same_o time_n be_v gulielmus_fw-la de_n sancto_fw-la amore_fw-la a_o master_n and_o chief_a ruler_n then_o in_o paris_n who_o go_v as_o far_o as_o arnoldus_fw-la apply_v the_o same_o scripture_n which_o concern_v antichrist_n as_o we_o do_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n and_o therefore_o he_o also_o be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n and_o his_o book_n burn_v by_o your_o popish_a rout_n and_o in_o the_o year_n 1260_o laurentius_n anglicus_n a_o master_n of_o paris_n also_o take_v this_o william_n part_n against_o the_o pope_n &_o write_v a_o book_n in_o his_o defence_n in_o the_o year_n 1290_o petrus_n johamnes_n a_o minorite_n direct_o preach_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n and_o rome_n great_a babylon_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v burn_v after_o he_o be_v dead_a 30_o year_n and_o more_o before_o this_o robert_z grosthead_n a_o famous_a learned_a man_n and_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n for_o he_o die_v in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o fifty_o three_o be_v a_o great_a withstander_n of_o the_o pope_n tyranny_n and_o three_o day_n before_o his_o death_n have_v conference_n with_o his_o clergy_n he_o labour_v to_o make_v they_o see_v by_o sundry_a demonstration_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o his_o do_n antichristian_a king_n philip_n of_o france_n about_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o be_v a_o great_a withstander_n of_o the_o supremacy_n which_o now_o the_o pope_n challenge_v and_o a_o resister_n in_o his_o dominion_n of_o sundry_a of_o his_o enormity_n and_o william_n nagareta_n and_o the_o prelate_n of_o france_n then_o join_v with_o their_o king_n against_o the_o pope_n grosthead_n this_o king_n philip_n and_o his_o clergy_n as_o afterward_o king_n edward_n the_o 3._o king_n of_o england_n in_o the_o year_n 1346_o despise_v the_o pope_n curse_n &_o appeal_v from_o he_o to_o god_n there_o be_v in_o a_o ancient_a chronicle_n of_o s._n albon_n a_o notable_a epistle_n of_o one_o cassiodorus_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n wherein_o be_v lay_v forth_o a_o number_n of_o lamentable_a abuse_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o twenty_o eight_o in_o the_o extravagant_n we_o read_v that_o marsillus_n patavinus_n johannes_n de_fw-fr ganduno_n michael_n chesenas_n petrus_n de_fw-fr carborea_n and_o johannes_n de_fw-fr poliaco_n all_o great_a learned_a man_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o preach_v against_o his_o supremacy_n and_o other_o error_n of_o that_o church_n of_o he_o about_o the_o year_n 1326._o there_o be_v they_o also_o many_o learned_a man_n more_o that_o dispute_v &_o write_v against_o his_o supremacy_n &_o which_o take_v part_n with_o ludovicke_a the_o emperor_n against_o he_o as_o william_n occam_n luitpoldus_n andreas_n landanensis_fw-la vlricus_fw-la hangenor_n the_o emperor_n treasurer_n and_o other_o dante_n be_v live_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o write_v against_o the_o pope_n the_o order_n of_o religious_a man_n and_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o decree_n say_v that_o these_o be_v three_o great_a enemy_n to_o the_o truth_n he_o flat_o have_v leave_v in_o write_v in_o his_o canticle_n of_o purgatory_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o a_o pastor_n be_v become_v a_o wolf_n &_o that_o he_o be_v the_o whoar_n of_o babylon_n in_o the_o year_n 1350._o gregory_n ariminensis_n andreas_n de_fw-fr castro_n and_o burdianus_n teach_v as_o we_o do_v against_o your_o doctrine_n of_o freewill_n and_o merit_n taulerus_n then_o a_o preacher_n in_o argentine_n preach_v open_o against_o your_o doctrine_n
since_o augustine_n the_o monk_n come_v into_o england_n as_o i_o have_v say_v and_o for_o 300_o year_n after_o he_o your_o glorious_a succession_n must_v fail_v there_o be_v so_o many_o apparent_a difference_n for_o so_o long_a space_n at_o least_o betwixt_o the_o opinion_n that_o your_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n hold_v now_o and_o they_o that_o be_v hold_v then_o take_v heed_n therefore_o while_o you_o measure_v thus_o to_o we_o and_o so_o seek_v to_o disgrace_v they_o who_o name_n we_o cite_v that_o the_o same_o be_v not_o measure_v to_o you_o again_o &_o so_o the_o neck_n of_o your_o visible_a succession_n be_v break_v to_o the_o peril_n of_o the_o life_n of_o your_o church_n which_o draw_v her_o breath_n thereby_o now_o to_o come_v to_o your_o disgrace_n of_o our_o church_n with_o the_o difference_n of_o opinion_n betwixt_o luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o your_o lay_n to_o our_o charge_n all_o the_o heresy_n that_o have_v spring_v up_o since_o luther_n begin_v first_o to_o preach_v against_o you_o therein_o do_v you_o we_o manifold_a wrong_n for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v no_o strange_a or_o new_a thing_n to_o find_v the_o dear_a servant_n of_o god_n and_o the_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n church_n sometime_o and_o in_o some_o thing_n differ_v and_o hoat_o dissent_v in_o opinion_n do_v we_o not_o read_v mat._n 16._o that_o one_o thing_n seem_v good_a to_o peter_n and_o the_o contrary_n seem_v and_o be_v indeed_o good_a in_o christ_n judgement_n do_v not_o peter_n take_v one_o course_n and_o paul_n another_o at_o antioch_n galat._n 2._o insomuch_o that_o paul_n there_o rebuke_v peter_n open_o and_o sharp_o and_o find_v we_o not_o act._n 15._o paul_n and_o barnabas_n grow_v to_o that_o heat_n of_o contention_n about_o the_o receive_n again_o or_o refuse_v of_o john_n mark_v that_o they_o part_v company_n and_o if_o we_o leave_v the_o scripture_n and_o go_v down_o to_o late_a time_n and_o view_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n even_o in_o the_o pure_a time_n thereof_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o no_o strange_a thing_n to_o see_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n and_o therefore_o also_o hot_a contention_n betwixt_o those_o who_o yet_o we_o will_v and_o must_v account_v the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n betwixt_o polycrates_n &_o victor_n the_o east_n and_o west_n church_n irenaeus_n and_o certain_a other_o bishop_n of_o france_n and_o some_o pope_n the_o contention_n about_o the_o observation_n of_o easter_n be_v such_o euse_n 5.21.22.23.24_o that_o one_o side_n excommunicate_v another_o that_o diverse_a synod_n be_v hold_v to_o appease_v it_o and_o yet_o it_o continue_v 300_o year_n &_o more_o and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o there_o be_v contention_n betwixt_o cyprian_a &_o other_o bishop_n of_o africa_n &_o cornelius_n &_o stephanus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o that_o they_o even_o they_o at_o rome_n encroch_v too_o much_o as_o the_o other_o thought_n to_o intermeddle_v within_z the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n in_o receive_v conden_v &_o excommunicate_v fugitive_n that_o run_v to_o rome_n from_o thence_o neither_o be_v the_o controversy_n small_a betwixt_o they_o about_o the_o rebaptise_v of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v before_o only_o baptize_v by_o heretic_n for_o proof_n of_o both_o which_o point_n i_o refer_v you_o to_o the_o three_o and_o four_o epistle_n of_o cyprian_n first_o book_n of_o epistle_n and_o to_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o his_o second_o book_n and_o to_o the_o three_o and_o four_o chapter_n of_o eusebius_n seven_o book_n basil_n also_o and_o the_o church_n of_o caesarea_n as_o it_o be_v well_o know_v be_v at_o hot_a contention_n about_o ecclesiastical_a song_n and_o ceremony_n theophilus_n of_o alexandria_n and_o chrysostome_n of_o constantinople_n have_v between_o they_o a_o violent_a and_o troublesome_a contention_n and_o great_a part_n take_v there_o be_v of_o both_o side_n and_o that_o along_o time_n cyrillus_n of_o alexandria_n write_v against_o theodoret_n in_o a_o controversy_n of_o catholic_a religion_n betwixt_o miletius_n a_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n and_o one_o peter_n of_o alexandria_n and_o their_o follower_n of_o both_o side_n there_o arise_v and_o continue_v a_o long_a while_n to_o the_o great_a trouble_n of_o the_o church_n a_o lamentable_a contention_n all_o ecclesiastical_a story_n for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v with_o grief_n make_v report_n of_o these_o yea_o down_o from_o christ_n to_o the_o age_n wherein_o every_o one_o of_o they_o write_v it_o too_o plain_o appear_v in_o they_o that_o there_o be_v never_o yet_o any_o one_o century_n of_o year_n but_o it_o have_v have_v new_a contention_n and_o those_o many_o not_o only_o betwixt_o heretic_n and_o catholic_n but_o also_o even_o among_o those_o that_o otherwise_o of_o both_o side_n be_v to_o be_v repute_v sound_n christian_n hierom_n and_o augustine_n as_o all_o man_n will_v confess_v be_v in_o their_o time_n worthy_a so_o to_o be_v account_v and_o yet_o it_o appear_v in_o their_o work_n that_o there_o be_v great_a diversity_n of_o opinion_n and_o that_o in_o many_o thing_n of_o great_a moment_n betwixt_o they_o epiphanius_n bishop_n of_o cyprus_n and_o chrysostome_n of_o who_o i_o speak_v before_o be_v both_o famous_a christian_n and_o yet_o the_o story_n of_o their_o time_n show_v that_o they_o be_v bitter_a enemy_n it_o be_v notorious_o know_v that_o among_o the_o bishop_n assemble_v against_o the_o arrian_n at_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a constantine_n by_o the_o book_n offer_v unto_o he_o one_o against_o a_o other_o find_v that_o they_o then_o have_v among_o themselves_o many_o contention_n and_o variety_n of_o opinion_n and_o infinite_a it_o be_v to_o reckon_v up_o all_o the_o example_n that_o may_v easy_o be_v find_v to_o this_o end_n indeed_o i_o read_v for_o these_o and_o such_o like_a difference_n the_o jew_n and_o heathen_a people_n mock_v at_o the_o christian_n and_o hereby_o seek_v mighty_o to_o deface_v they_o and_o their_o religion_n seven_o stromat_n clement_n alexandrini_n but_o i_o never_o read_v that_o either_o then_o or_o since_o ever_o any_o sound_n christian_n though_o for_o this_o cause_n they_o take_v occasion_n to_o mourn_v yet_o that_o they_o or_o any_o of_o they_o take_v occasion_n to_o condemn_v either_o the_o one_o side_n or_o the_o other_o or_o both_o as_o not_o to_o be_v therefore_o at_o all_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o notwithstanding_o these_o difference_n they_o see_v that_o they_o join_v together_o otherwise_o as_o brethren_n in_o hold_v together_o the_o fundamental_a point_n and_o that_o they_o who_o you_o call_v lutheran_n &_o zwinglians_n do_v so_o the_o book_n of_o late_o set_v forth_o of_o the_o harmony_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o all_o the_o church_n that_o hereabout_o profess_v the_o gospel_n do_v make_v it_o most_o manifest_a and_o evident_a and_o therefore_o for_o any_o force_n that_o this_o reason_n carry_v with_o it_o this_o their_o difference_n which_o be_v in_o effect_n only_o about_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n they_o both_o may_v be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a ancient_a catholic_n church_n as_o well_o as_o these_o other_o who_o i_o have_v name_v another_o wrong_n that_o herein_o they_o offer_v we_o be_v this_o that_o be_v themselves_o at_o variance_n among_o themselves_o and_o have_v have_v many_o and_o great_a contention_n and_o yet_o have_v still_o some_o about_o as_o great_a a_o matter_n of_o religion_n as_o this_o that_o yet_o forget_v the_o beam_n in_o their_o own_o eye_n like_o hypocrite_n they_o be_v so_o busy_a with_o the_o moat_n in_o we_o for_o who_o so_o read_v the_o history_n of_o their_o pope_n write_v by_o their_o own_o friend_n beside_o a_o number_n of_o hot_a and_o contentious_a schism_n trouble_v all_o christendom_n for_o many_o year_n together_o yea_o sometime_o forty_o year_n continue_v betwixt_o their_o pope_n &_o antipope_n he_o shall_v find_v it_o so_o common_a a_o thing_n for_o the_o succeed_a pope_n to_o contrary_a the_o proceed_n of_o his_o predecessor_n as_o though_o the_o chief_a glory_n of_o their_o papacy_n lie_v in_o that_o and_o therefore_o poor_a gratian_n take_v a_o cumbersome_a work_n in_o hand_n to_o make_v a_o concord_n of_o such_o discord_v canon_n their_o religion_n consider_v it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a controversy_n that_o can_v be_v whither_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_a council_n have_v the_o superior_a authority_n and_o so_o must_v be_v the_o carrier_n of_o the_o church_n tongue_n to_o decide_v and_o determine_v controversy_n and_o yet_o even_o in_o this_o controversy_n they_o be_v so_o at_o concord_n that_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n determine_v one_o way_n and_o the_o counsel_n of_o florence_n and_o ferraria_n the_o other_o way_n and_o yet_o both_o side_n have_v his_o stout_a champion_n the_o scotiste_n and_o thomist_n many_o a_o
according_a to_o the_o succession_n of_o those_o bishop_n unto_o who_o only_o the_o apostle_n commit_v the_o custody_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n the_o which_o say_v he_o be_v come_v to_o us._n this_o say_v irenaeus_n do_v write_v in_o his_o three_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n that_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n do_v withstand_v the_o valentinian_o and_o the_o marcioniste_n which_o be_v great_a heretic_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n apostle_n a_o curse_a gloss_n for_o it_o corrupt_v the_o text_n for_o the_o tradition_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o have_v good_a warrant_n in_o the_o write_v word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o doctrine_n not_o write_v but_o receive_v from_o age_n to_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o continue_v till_o their_o time_n he_o say_v likewise_o unto_o the_o tradition_n which_o be_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n we_o do_v persuade_v and_o provoke_v those_o that_o speak_v against_o tradition_n he_o write_v as_o much_o more_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o say_v book_n forasmuch_o say_v he_o as_o it_o be_v to_o tedious_a to_o set_v forth_o in_o one_o book_n the_o successor_n of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o to_o tell_v they_o one_o by_o one_o we_o do●●●●●_n throw_v those_o that_o for_o vain_a glory_n do_v seek_v to_o gather_v disciple_n together_o touch_v they_o contrary_a to_o that_o that_o do_v appertain_v unto_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o which_o we_o do_v show_v to_o they_o by_o the_o say_v tradition_n and_o by_o the_o faith_n that_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o be_v come_v to_o we_o by_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o great_a and_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n the_o which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o two_o glorious_a martyr_n and_o apostle_n saint_n peter_n &_o saint_n paul_n these_o be_v his_o word_n in_o his_o three_o book_n adversus_fw-la haereses_fw-la say_v haereses_fw-la the_o three_o you_o shall_v say_v the_o five_o chapter_n and_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o say_v chapter_n he_o say_v thus_o all_o these_o that_o will_v understand_v the_o truth_n may_v present_o regard_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v manifest_a throughout_o the_o world_n and_o we_o can_v count_v the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v institute_v and_o ordain_v bishop_n in_o the_o church_n and_o their_o successor_n till_o our_o day_n which_o have_v neither_o know_v nor_o teach_v any_o thing_n like_o unto_o the_o fable_n and_o tale_n that_o these_o do_v preach_v unto_o us._n untrue_o us._n if_o you_o say_v so_o you_o say_v it_o without_o cause_n and_o untrue_o not_o without_o cause_n we_o may_v now_o a_o day_n say_v the_o like_a of_o the_o lutheran_n caluiniste_n &_o other_o sect_n of_o our_o time_n after_o this_o he_o do_v set_v forth_o all_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n do_v rome_n if_o the_o pope_n ever_o since_o have_v be_v like_o these_o you_o and_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v need_v to_o strive_v as_o we_o do_v from_o saint_n peter_n unto_o eleutherius_fw-la which_o be_v pope_n in_o his_o time_n and_o he_o do_v affirm_v that_o that_o number_n do_v suffice_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o marcian_n and_o valentinian_n be_v false_a &_o very_a hurtful_a because_o that_o it_o be_v unknown_a or_o at_o the_o least_o not_o receive_v or_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n be_v under_o the_o governance_n of_o any_o of_o th●se_a pope_n then_o with_o great_a reason_n ought_v prescription_n to_o take_v place_n against_o be_v against_o true_a but_o such_o you_o shall_v never_o prove_v we_o to_o be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v unknowen_a this_o 1500._o year_n or_o at_o the_o least_o if_o any_o body_n seek_v to_o publish_v it_o he_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o false_a perditious_a heretic_n the_o v._o chapter_n you_o must_v remember_v that_o vincentius_n live_v 1000_o year_n ago_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n &_o that_o therefore_o he_o speak_v of_o their_o time_n and_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o ancient_a faith_n that_o then_o be_v whereof_o if_o you_o understand_v he_o we_o say_v as_o he_o say_v and_o be_v more_o willing_a to_o join_v and_o hold_v communion_n with_o that_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o than_o you_o but_o then_o his_o say_n make_v direct_o against_o you_o for_o neither_o your_o church_n nor_o faith_n be_v in_o his_o day_n we_o grant_v you_o also_o that_o irenaeus_n do_v urge_v succession_n of_o person_n to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o heretic_n as_o you_o show_v in_o this_o chapter_n out_o of_o he_o but_o withal_o then_o you_o must_v not_o forget_v that_o he_o live_v not_o long_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o as_o yet_o they_o who_o succession_n he_o allege_v continue_v in_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n from_o which_o long_o ago_o your_o roman_a church_n as_o it_o be_v now_o have_v fall_v by_o antichristian_a apostasy_n for_o that_o he_o call_v the_o principal_a succession_n and_o those_o bishop_n only_o he_o teach_v be_v to_o be_v obey_v who_o together_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishopricke_n have_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o truth_n as_o i_o note_v unto_o you_o out_o of_o his_o four_o book_n 43_o chapter_n in_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o first_o chapter_n but_o irenaeus_n no_o where_n prescribe_v that_o his_o example_n of_o urge_v heretic_n to_o see_v their_o folly_n by_o succession_n for_o a_o perpetual_a rule_n to_o follow_v neither_o therein_o do_v he_o prophecy_n that_o for_o 1000_o year_n after_o &_o further_o those_o successive_a line_n of_o bishop_n or_o any_o other_o will_v continue_v so_o in_o possession_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n as_o that_o safe_o always_o they_o may_v be_v join_v unto_o for_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a what_o be_v prophesy_v concern_v the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n 2_o thess_n 2._o and_o revel_v 17._o and_o that_o paul_n tell_v to_o the_o pastor_n of_o ephesus_n act._n 20._o that_o after_o his_o departure_n there_o will_v arise_v up_o even_o among_o themselves_o grievous_a wolf_n not_o spare_v the_o flock_n which_o must_v needs_o import_v that_o howsoever_o in_o his_o time_n he_o think_v sometime_o of_o succession_n of_o bishop_n that_o continue_v in_o the_o truth_n that_o yet_o it_o be_v far_o from_o his_o meaning_n to_o prophecy_n that_o so_o it_o will_v be_v always_o you_o reason_v therefore_o in_o this_o point_n as_o one_o that_o to_o prove_v the_o stew_n at_o rome_n now_o to_o be_v pure_a virgin_n shall_v allege_v for_o proof_n thereof_o that_o they_o be_v so_o when_o they_o be_v young_a child_n for_o even_o like_a difference_n and_o odds_n there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o and_o her_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n and_o that_o that_o be_v in_o the_o day_n &_o time_n that_o you_o and_o the_o author_n that_o you_o allege_v speak_v of_o for_o whereas_o unto_o these_o time_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o her_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n stand_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o truth_n since_o not_o only_o many_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o who_o you_o hold_v be_v free_a &_o further_a of_o of_o all_o other_o from_o err_v as_o i_o have_v show_v already_o most_o plain_o fall_v into_o heresy_n but_o also_o all_o your_o romish_a doctrine_n which_o we_o now_o count_v &_o call_v papistical_a be_v divise_v &_o find_v out_o since_o those_o time_n and_o be_v also_o not_o only_o beside_o but_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n then_o teach_v &_o receive_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n &_o her_o pastor_n as_o ere_o i_o have_v do_v with_o you_o i_o hope_v at_o least_o in_o great_a part_n sufficient_o to_o prove_v it_o shall_v seem_v therefore_o that_o either_o you_o in_o thus_o reason_v be_v very_o childish_a yourself_o or_o else_o you_o think_v you_o have_v to_o deal_v but_o with_o babe_n and_o fool_n in_o that_o because_o irenaeus_n that_o flourish_v within_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n when_o the_o church_n be_v yet_o pure_a and_o undefiled_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o time_n that_o follow_v can_v and_o do_v urge_v succession_n of_o person_n join_v with_o succession_n of_o truth_n therefore_o you_o may_v that_o live_v 1500._o year_n after_o christ_n and_o more_o you_o must_v first_o prove_v that_o succession_n of_o truth_n be_v unseparable_a from_o personal_a succession_n &_o that_o ever_o since_o and_o now_o also_o the_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n who_o personal_a succession_n you_o brag_v of_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o truth_n as_o well_o as_o they_o do_v who_o name_n he_o recite_v whereof_o neither_o shall_v either_o you_o or_o any_o of_o you_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n stand_v fie_o therefore_o for_o shame_n that_o you_o
pretend_v you_o will_v yield_v unto_o they_o in_o this_o point_n and_o so_o spare_v much_o labour_n that_o you_o bestow_v to_o get_v credit_n to_o your_o tradition_n unwriten_a which_o if_o you_o will_v once_o be_v bring_v unto_o we_o shall_v quick_o by_o the_o sole_a and_o sufficient_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v a_o fair_a hand_n of_o you_o which_o you_o espy_v whatsoever_o otherwise_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o account_v of_o the_o father_n to_o blear_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o simple_a in_o this_o they_o shall_v keep_v their_o judgement_n to_o themselves_o for_o you_o like_v it_o not_o so_o that_o this_o and_o such_o your_o like_a deal_n with_o they_o cause_v one_o once_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o father_n be_v unto_o you_o as_o counter_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o he_o that_o cast_v a_o account_n according_a to_o who_o will_n and_o pleasure_n sometime_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o counter_n stand_v for_o a_o ob_n that_o stand_v immediate_o before_o for_o a_o pound_n or_o more_o so_o with_o you_o when_o it_o please_v you_o a_o ancient_a father_n testimony_n be_v of_o great_a weight_n and_o when_o it_o please_v you_o again_o 20._o of_o their_o testimony_n be_v nothing_o howbeit_o i_o hope_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n by_o these_o testimony_n do_v &_o will_v perceive_v that_o you_o wonderful_o seek_v to_o abuse_v god_n people_n when_o yet_o you_o will_v persuade_v they_o at_o any_o time_n that_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v favourer_n and_o patron_n of_o your_o unwriten_a tradition_n and_o i_o trust_v this_o may_v serve_v to_o make_v it_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o these_o ancient_a father_n your_o andradius_fw-la may_v be_v ashamed_a to_o write_v as_o he_o have_v scripto_fw-la svo_fw-la aedito_fw-mi tempore_fw-la tridentini_n concilii_fw-la that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o catholic_a religion_n be_v leave_v unto_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o write_v and_o that_o your_o lyndan_n be_v extreme_a mad_a or_o very_o drink_v when_o he_o write_v it_o be_v most_o extreme_a madness_n to_o think_v that_o the_o whole_a and_o entire_a body_n of_o evangelicall_a doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v search_v out_o of_o the_o apostolic_a letter_n write_v with_o ink_n &_o out_o of_o the_o little_a book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n panopl_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 22._o but_o thus_o to_o make_v unwriten_a tradition_n sometime_o equal_a &_o sometime_o superior_a in_o authority_n to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n &_o that_o upon_o this_o ground_n that_o all_o truth_n be_v not_o sufficient_o teach_v therein_o you_o have_v learn_v of_o the_o encratite_n manichees_n and_o of_o the_o montanist_n valentinian_o and_o other_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o they_o that_o write_v against_o they_o and_o yet_o o_o good_a god_n what_o a_o stir_n now_o of_o late_a this_o andradius_fw-la lyndan_n &_o other_o such_o your_o great_a champion_n have_v make_v &_o what_o cost_v they_o have_v bestow_v to_o draw_v man_n from_o that_o estimation_n that_o these_o father_n have_v of_o the_o authority_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n in_o make_v large_a treatise_n and_o discourse_n to_o show_v that_o the_o authority_n thereof_o depend_v of_o the_o testimony_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v not_o sufficient_a no_o not_o half_o sufficient_a for_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o church_n either_o for_o religion_n or_o conversation_n and_o that_o they_o be_v obscure_a &_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v &_o all_o upon_o this_o occasion_n that_o will_v they_o will_v they_o they_o be_v drive_v to_o perceive_v that_o their_o opinion_n wherein_o we_o differ_v from_o they_o can_v any_o long_o be_v defend_v by_o the_o scripture_n for_o all_o their_o sophistry_n &_o cunning_a and_o that_o therefore_o they_o see_v they_o must_v maintain_v the_o credit_n of_o they_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n &_o her_o unwriten_a tradition_n which_o they_o may_v say_v to_o be_v what_o they_o lift_v or_o that_o else_o they_o must_v be_v drive_v to_o throw_v we_o the_o buckler_n and_o to_o run_v out_o of_o the_o field_n but_o you_o do_v foul_o deceive_v yourselves_o if_o you_o think_v in_o this_o great_a light_n that_o man_n espy_v not_o that_o this_o be_v a_o shameful_a shift_n and_o which_o argue_v that_o your_o cause_n be_v even_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n that_o you_o can_v hold_v out_o no_o long_o unless_o it_o be_v by_o prefer_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o wife_n before_o christ_n the_o husband_n &_o by_o give_v she_o your_o commission_n to_o sit_v as_o judge_v over_o her_o husband_n word_n &_o to_o add_v there_o unto_o and_o take_v therefrom_o how_o &_o what_o seem_v good_a unto_o she_o and_o your_o fault_n herein_o be_v the_o more_o intolerable_a because_o by_o the_o church_n you_o understand_v always_o your_o popish_a synagogue_n that_o now_o be_v for_o even_o child_n may_v see_v that_o you_o be_v very_o far_o drive_v when_o there_o be_v no_o other_o remedy_n but_o you_o must_v thus_o open_v your_o mouth_n and_o prepare_v your_o pen_n to_o disgrace_v his_o write_v word_n which_o all_o man_n know_v to_o be_v his_o word_n indeed_o without_o question_n for_o the_o grace_v &_o countenance_v in_o this_o sort_n of_o that_o which_o though_o you_o call_v his_o word_n you_o be_v never_o able_a to_o prove_v to_o be_v so_o and_o for_o this_o who_o see_v not_o that_o we_o may_v just_o say_v of_o you_o as_o tertull_n apolog._n 5._o say_v of_o the_o heathen_a in_o his_o time_n apud_fw-la vos_fw-la de_fw-la humano_fw-la arbitratu_fw-la pensitatur_fw-la divinitas_fw-la nisi_fw-la homini_fw-la deus_fw-la placuerit_fw-la deus_fw-la non_fw-la erit_fw-la homo_fw-la iam_fw-la deo_fw-la propitius_fw-la esse_fw-la debebit_fw-la that_o be_v with_o you_o the_o godhead_n be_v esteem_v of_o as_o man_n shall_v think_v good_a unless_o god_n please_v man_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v god_n man_n now_o must_v be_v good_a to_o god_n howsoever_o you_o be_v ashamed_a thus_o gross_o with_o these_o profane_a pagan_n to_o speak_v yet_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o that_o you_o still_o say_v &_o write_v that_o the_o write_v word_n of_o god_n be_v inferior_a in_o authority_n to_o the_o church_n &_o have_v the_o canonical_a credit_n from_o thence_o &_o that_o the_o sense_n thereof_o be_v &_o must_v be_v whatsoever_o your_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o time_n be_v do_v define_v &_o determine_v so_o to_o be_v rely_v still_o upon_o unwriten_a tradition_n &_o bear_v man_n in_o hand_n that_o they_o be_v as_o well_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n as_o you_o do_v all_o man_n who_o your_o enchantment_n have_v not_o bewitch_v &_o make_v blind_a may_v see_v that_o in_o effect_v you_o be_v as_o gross_a as_o they_o of_o who_o these_o word_n be_v true_o write_v this_o once_o we_o know_v to_o be_v his_o word_n which_o we_o find_v set_v down_o in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n &_o we_o be_v sure_o this_o be_v write_v by_o the_o direction_n of_o god_n spirit_n for_o the_o information_n of_o the_o church_n and_o we_o can_v be_v ignorant_a but_o that_o this_o spirit_n of_o god_n foresee_v what_o dangerous_a heretic_n there_o will_v be_v which_o if_o they_o be_v not_o prevent_v by_o leave_v the_o word_n of_o god_n full_o in_o write_v under_o the_o pretence_n of_o unwriten_a tradition_n will_v bring_v in_o damnable_a heresy_n and_o therefore_o see_v it_o be_v evident_a unto_o we_o that_o he_o in_o these_o writing_n begin_v to_o leave_v instruction_n unto_o we_o to_o settle_v we_o in_o the_o certain_a truth_n &_o we_o know_v he_o can_v go_v thorough_a with_o it_o because_o he_o be_v god_n &_o the_o fountain_n &_o author_n of_o all_o wisdom_n &_o truth_n &_o be_v sure_a that_o he_o be_v willing_a because_o he_o perfect_o love_v the_o church_n &_o by_o christ_n promise_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostles_n be_v to_o lead_v it_o into_o all_o truth_n we_o must_v needs_o think_v it_o flat_a blasphemy_n to_o think_v that_o the_o write_v word_n of_o god_n be_v any_o way_n unsufficient_a for_o the_o full_a direction_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o matter_n and_o therefore_o howsoever_o you_o please_v your_o sect_n in_o this_o devise_n of_o you_o in_o feight_v thus_o for_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n think_v not_o to_o the_o contrary_a but_o any_o man_n of_o mean_a judgement_n will_v descry_v both_o your_o u●●●tie_n and_o impiety_n therein_o by_o make_v this_o reason_n in_o his_o own_o mind_n unto_o himself_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o scripture_n see_v it_o good_a and_o necessary_a to_o leave_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o the_o full_a direction_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o matter_n write_v by_o that_o be_v do_v and_o write_v it_o be_v clear_a he_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n and_o to_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n
thing_n that_o we_o hold_v teach_v and_o preach_v as_o much_o as_o you_o you_o do_v therefore_o but_o abuse_v your_o reader_n in_o go_v about_o to_o make_v he_o believe_v that_o we_o reject_v your_o bishop_n only_o for_o their_o lewd_a life_n whereas_o the_o thing_n especial_o that_o we_o condemn_v both_o you_o and_o they_o for_o be_v your_o antichristian_a doctrine_n it_o be_v well_o that_o when_o you_o have_v say_v what_o you_o can_v for_o your_o line_n of_o pope_n yet_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o oft_o interruption_n of_o their_o succession_n by_o schism_n and_o otherwise_o you_o be_v glad_a in_o the_o end_n to_o give_v we_o this_o note_n that_o when_o you_o talk_v of_o succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n you_o mean_v not_o only_o they_o but_o all_o other_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o your_o church_n in_o who_o the_o succession_n have_v be_v continue_v whensoever_o it_o be_v interrupt_v in_o the_o other_o for_o hereby_o in_o effect_n you_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o you_o mean_v not_o nor_o think_v it_o wisdom_n to_o lean_v too_o much_o to_o the_o succession_n of_o they_o lest_o they_o let_v your_o building_n fall_v wherein_o i_o prefer_v you_o yet_o before_o stapleton_n in_o that_o herein_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o manifold_a interruption_n of_o their_o succession_n seem_v to_o have_v prevail_v more_o with_o you_o then_o with_o he_o for_o he_o write_v against_o doctor_n fulke_n of_o this_o matter_n of_o succession_n though_o he_o say_v he_o will_v not_o hold_v succession_n in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o see_v to_o have_v continue_v general_o yet_o in_o this_o particular_a line_n of_o pope_n only_a he_o think_v that_o safe_o he_o may_v you_o be_v also_o to_o be_v commend_v for_o acknowledge_v dissension_n to_o have_v be_v betwixt_o your_o pope_n and_o antipope_n themselves_o and_o in_o leave_v they_o without_o defence_n for_o their_o lewd_a life_n ambition_n and_o negligence_n even_o to_o answer_v for_o themselves_o for_o indeed_o as_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o these_o thing_n most_o monstrous_o have_v be_v find_v in_o very_a many_o of_o they_o so_o you_o can_v not_o have_v have_v any_o honesty_n in_o smthe_v of_o their_o fault_n yet_o you_o go_v some_o thing_n to_o far_o in_o say_v that_o their_o dissension_n be_v not_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n hold_v before_o for_o how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o one_o part_n of_o the_o world_n join_v with_o the_o pope_n the_o rest_n with_o his_o antipope_n or_o antipope_n it_o be_v a_o article_n now_o of_o your_o catholic_a faith_n boniface_n 8._o de_fw-fr maioritate_fw-la &_o obed_a cap._n 1._o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o be_v believe_v that_o all_o soul_n must_v submit_v themselves_o to_o your_o pope_n as_o to_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o these_o for_o many_o year_n together_o ban_v &_o curse_v each_o other_o faction_n thereby_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o only_o trouble_v but_o marvellous_o break_v the_o ix_o chapter_n now_o see_v that_o we_o have_v yield_v you_o a_o full_a account_n of_o our_o vocation_n to_o the_o ministry_n if_o we_o may_v be_v so_o bold_a i_o think_v it_o be_v no_o great_a presumption_n to_o demand_n the_o like_a of_o you_o he_o you_o caluin_n never_o thus_o reason_v &_o therefore_o you_o play_v the_o papist_n with_o he_o that_o be_v you_o bely_v he_o for_o even_o as_o caluin_n have_v heretofore_o call_v upon_o we_o to_o have_v we_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n or_o otherwise_o he_o will_v absolute_o affirm_v that_o god_n can_v be_v call_v the_o author_n of_o our_o vocation_n to_o the_o ministry_n we_o say_v likewise_o that_o if_o you_o do_v not_o show_v the_o like_a of_o you_o you_o shall_v give_v we_o leave_v although_o it_o be_v against_o your_o will_n to_o say_v that_o you_o come_v not_o from_o god_n but_o from_o the_o procurement_n of_o his_o adversary_n tertullian_n be_v tertullian_n we_o know_v he_o speak_v against_o such_o heretic_n as_o you_o papist_n be_v who_o as_o you_o know_v above_o 1200_o year_n ago_o speak_v against_o such_o as_o you_o be_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr praescrip_n haeret_fw-la do_v write_v these_o word_n edant_fw-la origines_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la evoluent_a ordinem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la suorum_fw-la per_fw-la successiones_fw-la abinitio_fw-la decurrentem_fw-la hoc_fw-la enim_fw-la modo_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la cursus_fw-la suos_fw-la deferunt_fw-la sicut_fw-la romanorum_fw-la clementem_fw-la episcopum_fw-la à_fw-la petro_n ordinatum_fw-la id_fw-la proinde_fw-la utique_fw-la &_o coeteri_fw-la exhibeant_fw-la quos_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n in_fw-la episcopalibus_fw-la constitutos_fw-la apostolico_fw-la semine_fw-la radices_fw-la habeant_fw-la drish_n habeant_fw-la here_o either_o be_v ignorance_n or_o wilful_a corruption_n of_o this_o author_n meaning_n &_o drish_n you_o see_v well_o by_o these_o word_n how_o that_o tertullian_n do_v continue_v with_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o pastor_n the_o which_o he_o do_v affirm_v to_o be_v necessary_a say_v that_o you_o and_o such_o as_o you_o be_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o to_o teach_v the_o people_n contrary_a to_o the_o ecclesiatical_a order_n except_o that_o you_o show_v the_o antiquity_n of_o your_o table_n and_o it_o be_v necessary_a say_v he_o that_o you_o reckon_v your_o pastor_n and_o bishop_n by_o order_n &_o how_o they_o have_v succeed_v one_o after_o another_o for_o this_o be_v the_o way_n that_o the_o church_n do_v maintain_v their_o right_n the_o say_v tertullian_n do_v grind_v his_o similitude_n upon_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o civil_a governance_n for_o when_o that_o these_o that_o be_v prince_n or_o lord_n do_v survey_v their_o land_n the_o subject_n be_v bind_v to_o show_v what_o land_n they_o hold_v of_o they_o set_v it_o all_o forth_o by_o account_n show_v by_o what_o tenure_n they_o hold_v their_o copy_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v demean_n or_o free_a hold_n come_v by_o inheritance_n or_o buy_v they_o ought_v likewise_o to_o name_v he_o that_o have_v it_o before_o and_o by_o their_o own_o title_n to_o overthrow_v all_o other_o person_n that_o may_v make_v claim_n unto_o it_o able_a it_o not_o yet_o nor_o ever_o will_v you_o be_v able_a according_a to_o this_o pattern_n and_o order_n we_o have_v give_v you_o account_n of_o our_o inheritance_n although_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o it_o set_v before_o your_o eye_n the_o similitude_n of_o solomon_n by_o who_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v represent_v that_o same_o solomon_n do_v give_v the_o sheep_n that_o run_v astray_o counsel_n to_o set_v his_o tabernacle_n by_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o shepherd_n &_o to_o follow_v their_o flock_n until_o he_o come_v to_o the_o place_n where_o christ_n be_v nail_v on_o the_o cross_n at_o noon_n day_n the_o which_o counsel_n as_o the_o most_o certain_a according_a to_o tertullian_n his_o opinion_n we_o do_v follow_v think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o keep_v we_o firm_o in_o the_o right_n and_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n for_o we_o that_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n do_v follow_v as_o touch_v our_o religion_n the_o step_n that_o our_o father_n lead_v before_o we_o and_o as_o it_o be_v go_v up_o upon_o the_o ladder_n of_o jacob_n gen._n 28._o day_n 28._o whatsoever_o you_o mean_v you_o can_v never_o deduce_v your_o religion_n so_o high_a for_o it_o have_v be_v a_o patch_v together_o long_o even_o till_o of_o very_a late_a day_n we_o mount_v by_o degree_n and_o degree_n i_o mean_v from_o year_n to_o year_n &_o from_o age_n to_o age_n until_o that_o we_o come_v to_o s._n saturim_n s._n denice_n s._n marcial_n &_o s_n gratian_n which_o be_v those_o that_o do_v first_o teach_v the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o tholose_a in_o paris_n and_o to_o those_o of_o guyenna_n and_o lorraine_n and_o so_o consequent_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o first_o do_v teach_v the_o catholic_a faith_n through_o all_o christendom_n who_o we_o do_v call_v in_o judgement_n before_o god_n to_o defend_v that_o faith_n which_o they_o have_v give_v we_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n they_o may_v call_v upon_o the_o apostle_n which_o send_v they_o &_o the_o apostle_n may_v direct_v themselves_o to_o christ_n who_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o most_o love_a apostle_n do_v command_v we_o to_o continue_v in_o that_o that_o be_v teach_v we_o at_o the_o beginning_n 1._o john_n 2._o and_o so_o we_o shall_v continue_v and_o rest_v with_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o if_o any_o body_n do_v come_v to_o teach_v we_o any_o other_o doctrine_n then_o that_o which_o have_v be_v teach_v we_o at_o the_o beginning_n i_o do_v not_o say_v bane_n say_v no_o take_v heed_n of_o that_o for_o the_o book_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v your_o bane_n write_v in_o book_n but_o
show_v by_o all_o lineal_a succession_n how_o you_o come_v to_o it_o from_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n but_o thereby_o also_o you_o have_v quite_o overthrow_v our_o claim_n this_o be_v easy_o say_v &_o well_o brag_v of_o you_o but_o it_o be_v more_o then_o either_o you_o can_v or_o mean_v to_o prove_v o_o yes_o say_v you_o we_o can_v as_o it_o be_v go_v up_o upon_o the_o ladder_n of_o jacob_n mount_v from_o step_n to_o step_v until_o in_o the_o top_n we_o come_v to_o those_o that_o first_o teach_v the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o tholossa_n paris_n and_o guienna_n as_o to_o s._n saturim_n denice_n marshal_n and_o gratian_n and_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o saint_n it_o may_v be_v these_o be_v saint_n you_o speak_v of_o and_o yet_o you_o have_v not_o show_v we_o that_o yea_o it_o may_v be_v also_o you_o can_v from_o age_n to_o age_n even_o from_o that_o time_n to_o we_o now_o name_v we_o the_o person_n that_o have_v succeed_v one_o another_o from_o those_o man_n you_o speak_v of_o but_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o all_o these_o person_n which_o have_v succeed_v have_v continue_v in_o the_o sound_a apostolic_a faith_n and_o so_o have_v derive_v it_o down_o from_o the_o first_o to_o you_o that_o be_v the_o last_o which_o unless_o you_o prove_v this_o climb_v upon_o this_o ladder_n you_o talk_v of_o will_v do_v you_o small_a pleasure_n but_o you_o be_v so_o confident_o persuade_v that_o the_o religion_n that_o you_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o now_o be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o be_v teach_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o beginning_n that_o you_o denounce_v he_o anathema_n be_v he_o man_n or_o angel_n that_o preach_v against_o it_o yet_o this_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o it_o be_v the_o very_a same_o for_o you_o may_v be_v deceive_v and_o if_o god_n will_v give_v you_o grace_n to_o read_v and_o right_o to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n sure_o i_o be_o that_o even_o in_o thus_o say_v you_o will_v find_v that_o you_o have_v as_o far_o as_o your_o authority_n reach_v curse_a and_o excommunicate_v your_o own_o self_n &_o your_o whole_a church_n so_o far_o of_o be_v we_o though_o it_o please_v you_o still_o to_o call_v our_o religion_n a_o new_a gospel_n from_o be_v afraid_a to_o join_v with_o you_o in_o anathematise_v they_o that_o preach_v any_o other_o gospel_n than_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n preach_v at_o the_o first_o that_o withal_o our_o heart_n we_o say_v amen_o thereunto_o and_o therefore_o for_o all_o your_o suppose_a newness_n of_o our_o religion_n we_o wish_v with_o all_o our_o heart_n according_a to_o johns_n counsel_n 1._o epist_n 2._o that_o that_o may_v abide_v which_o we_o have_v hear_v from_o the_o beginning_n we_o think_v tertullian_n say_v most_o true_o that_o come_v from_o the_o lord_n &_o be_v true_a that_o be_v first_o deliver_v &_o that_o be_v strange_a and_o false_a which_o be_v bring_v in_o after_o de_fw-fr praescrip_n adversus_fw-la haereticos_fw-la wherefore_o we_o say_v also_o most_o willing_o with_o he_o in_o a_o other_o place_n in_o his_o 4_o book_n against_o martion_n id_fw-la est_fw-la verius_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la prius_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v true_a that_o be_v former_a that_o be_v former_a that_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o that_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n which_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n but_o then_o we_o conclude_v with_o he_o de_fw-fr praescriptione_n adversus_fw-la haereticos_fw-la vndè_fw-la autem_fw-la extranei_fw-la &_o inimici_fw-la apostolis_n haeretici_fw-la nisi_fw-la ex_fw-la diversitate_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la etc._n etc._n how_o be_v stranger_n and_o enemy_n to_o the_o apostle_n know_v but_o by_o the_o diversity_n of_o doctrine_n which_o every_o one_o of_o his_o own_o mind_n have_v borough_n forth_o and_o receive_v against_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o let_v depravation_n of_o scripture_n and_o their_o exposition_n be_v account_v to_o be_v where_o the_o diversity_n of_o doctrine_n be_v find_v hitherto_o tertullian_n and_o we_o with_o he_o and_o therefore_o do_v not_o charge_v we_o any_o more_o with_o newness_n nor_o make_v your_o brag_n any_o more_o to_o deceive_v the_o simple_a of_o antiquity_n unless_o by_o the_o scripture_n wherein_o the_o simply_a know_v the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n be_v contain_v indeed_o you_o can_v prove_v your_o doctrine_n to_o agree_v with_o they_o and_o we_o to_o disagree_v for_o you_o may_v not_o think_v that_o you_o can_v cause_v they_o that_o have_v any_o wit_n or_o discretion_n at_o all_o leave_v they_o to_o believe_v that_o your_o doctrine_n be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v teach_v at_o the_o first_o by_o the_o apostle_n because_o you_o can_v say_v so_o or_o because_o you_o can_v tell_v they_o their_o father_n grandfather_n and_o great_a grandfather_n take_v it_o so_o as_o long_o as_o they_o see_v you_o be_v loath_a to_o come_v to_o the_o trial_n with_o the_o learned_a whither_o it_o be_v so_o or_o no_o by_o god_n write_v word_n even_o herein_o thunder_v out_o your_o anathema_n though_o you_o will_v seem_v therein_o stout_a and_o resolute_a in_o your_o religion_n yet_o if_o your_o word_n be_v well_o mark_v it_o may_v evident_o be_v perceive_v that_o like_o a_o dastard_n you_o shun_v the_o trial_n of_o your_o doctrine_n by_o the_o write_v word_n for_o you_o say_v if_o any_o body_n come_v to_o teach_v we_o any_o other_o doctrine_n then_o that_o which_o have_v be_v teach_v we_o at_o the_o beginning_n i_o do_v not_o say_v write_v in_o book_n no_o take_v heed_n o●_n that_o but_o print_v in_o our_o heart_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n etc._n etc._n whereby_o you_o bewray_v your_o mind_n namely_o to_o be_v this_o that_o when_o it_o shall_v come_v in_o trial_n what_o that_o religion_n be_v that_o be_v preach_v at_o the_o beginning_n you_o will_v not_o have_v the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n to_o determine_v the_o matter_n but_o that_o which_o be_v then_o write_v in_o man_n heart_n whereby_o you_o mean_v your_o unwriten_a tradition_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v what_o be_v write_v in_o man_n heart_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n better_o or_o more_o safe_o then_o by_o that_o which_o they_o write_v especial_o see_v as_o irenaeus_n have_v tell_v we_o that_o which_o they_o preach_v at_o the_o first_o after_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n they_o commit_v unto_o writing_n to_o be_v the_o foundation_n &_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o his_o 3_o book_n chap._n 1._o as_o for_o your_o unwriten_a word_n to_o speak_v most_o moderate_o you_o know_v the_o credit_n thereof_o be_v suspect_v and_o certain_a it_o be_v it_o must_v agree_v with_o the_o word_n write_v for_o god_n be_v one_o and_o selfsame_o both_o in_o writing_n and_o speak_v or_o else_o worthy_o may_v it_o not_o be_v suspect_v only_o but_o flat_o also_o reject_v as_o a_o false_a and_o counterfeit_a word_n which_o but_o that_o you_o know_v it_o do_v not_o you_o will_v without_o any_o such_o correction_n or_o explanation_n of_o your_o meaning_n have_v say_v simple_o that_o you_o will_v have_v he_o hold_v anathema_n that_o preach_v any_o other_o doctrine_n they_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o your_o own_o conscience_n tell_v you_o that_o you_o be_v another_o doctrine_n than_o have_v warrant_v fro_o thence_o before_o the_o curse_n shall_v drop_v out_o of_o your_o pen_n you_o think_v it_o wisdom_n lest_o in_o your_o own_o knowledge_n you_o shall_v have_v curse_v you_o self_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o you_o direct_v your_o sentence_n not_o against_o those_o that_o teach_v another_o doctrine_n than_o those_o book_n will_v warrant_v for_o of_o such_o you_o allow_v well_o enough_o or_o else_o you_o shall_v disallow_v yourselves_o but_o against_o those_o that_o teach_v another_o doctrine_n from_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o our_o heart_n so_o leave_v to_o yourselves_o liberty_n to_o make_v the_o poor_a people_n believe_v that_o that_o be_v whatsoever_o you_o will_v devise_v o_o this_o be_v too_o too_o gross_a &_o paltry_a deal_n in_o matter_n that_o so_o much_o concern_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n as_o this_o do_v especial_o in_o this_o so_o great_a light_n that_o shine_v now_o every_o where_n among_o us._n as_o for_o your_o life_n &_o the_o life_n of_o your_o pastor_n and_o great_a bishop_n though_o they_o be_v such_o as_o worthy_o you_o may_v be_v ashamed_a of_o yet_o if_o they_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n therein_o we_o will_v have_v hold_v for_o all_o the_o other_o communion_n with_o they_o but_o see_v their_o life_n have_v be_v such_o a_o long_a time_n as_o there_o be_v never_o worse_a in_o sodom_n nor_o any_o where_o else_o witness_n your_o own_o story_n benno_n cardin_n platina_n sabellicus_n abbas_n vsperg_n and_o other_o
by_o bertran_n and_o other_o before_o name_v and_o their_o follower_n as_o we_o have_v make_v it_o most_o evident_a in_o many_o book_n write_v to_o that_o purpose_n &_o namely_o of_o late_a in_o a_o great_a book_n call_v orthodoxus_n consensus_fw-la the_o true_a catholic_a consent_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o of_o all_o the_o controversy_n thereabouts_o print_v at_o tygure_n 1578_o which_o book_n all_o the_o swarm_v of_o you_o will_v never_o be_v sound_o able_a to_o answer_v &_o confute_v as_o long_o as_o you_o live_v and_o therefore_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o chapter_n be_v needle_n wherein_o you_o suppose_v that_o betwixt_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o we_o there_o be_v none_o that_o we_o can_v produce_v of_o our_o judgement_n or_o otherwise_o against_o you_o but_o you_o take_v upon_o you_o to_o prove_v that_o we_o cut_v of_o they_o all_o that_o have_v be_v between_o they_o &_o we_o because_o caluin_n have_v write_v handle_v this_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o he_o do_v find_v that_o they_o of_o old_a time_n have_v change_v the_o fashion_n of_o the_o administration_n thereof_o otherwise_o they_o christ_n institution_n will_v bear_v etc._n etc._n whereupon_o your_o conclusion_n follow_v not_o for_o diverse_a cause_n for_o a_o argument_n from_o one_o to_o all_o hold_v not_o as_o caluin_n have_v do_v so_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v all_o out_o opinion_n &_o we_o all_o do_v so_o for_o though_o we_o account_v of_o he_o as_o of_o a_o rare_a &_o singular_a minister_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o bind_v ourselves_o to_o do_v and_o say_v whatsoever_o he_o do_v and_o say_v for_o we_o know_v he_o to_o have_v be_v a_o man_n subject_n to_o error_n and_o infirmity_n for_o all_o his_o gift_n neither_o will_v you_o be_v content_v that_o such_o a_o argument_n shall_v hold_v always_o draw_v from_o any_o one_o of_o your_o great_a &_o most_o famous_a learned_a writer_n to_o press_v all_o the_o rest_n and_o a_o second_o reason_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o your_o argument_n be_v that_o there_o be_v more_o in_o your_o conclusion_n then_o be_v in_o the_o antecedent_n give_v you_o by_o he_o for_o you_o will_v conclude_v for_o those_o be_v your_o word_n to_o the_o proof_n whereof_o you_o cite_v caluin_n that_o we_o condenne_n &_o cut_v of_o all_o the_o christian_n that_o have_v be_v &_o be_v betwixt_o christ_n his_o apostle_n and_o we_o whereas_o caluin_n speak_v not_o of_o all_o but_o of_o some_o of_o old_a time_n the_o 3_o reason_n caluin_n himself_o give_v you_o in_o the_o even_o in_o the_o word_n set_v down_o by_o you_o he_o show_v plain_o that_o though_o in_o they_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o he_o note_v some_o aberration_n from_o the_o simplicity_n of_o christ_n institution_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o therefore_o cut_v they_o of_o from_o the_o church_n nor_o condenne_v they_o what_o be_v you_o such_o a_o cutter_n that_o you_o straight_o cut_v of_o all_o those_o from_o communion_n with_o you_o in_o who_o you_o can_v just_o find_v any_o fault_n or_o error_n in_o opinion_n or_o practice_v of_o life_n sure_o then_o you_o must_v cut_v of_o most_o of_o your_o best_a friend_n that_o which_o we_o can_v fond_o prove_v to_o be_v a_o fault_n in_o brethren_n either_o ancient_a or_o of_o late_a time_n we_o may_v safe_o note_v tell_v they_o of_o and_o labour_n to_o reform_v &_o yet_o as_o long_o as_o they_o join_v together_o with_o we_o in_o one_o god_n faith_n and_o baptism_n otherwise_o we_o can_v and_o aught_o to_o hold_v peace_n &_o christian_a communion_n with_o they_o or_o else_o where_o can_v there_o at_o any_o time_n be_v any_o true_a concord_n or_o peace_n keep_v in_o the_o church_n for_o some_o difference_n of_o opinion_n &_o usage_n there_o have_v always_o yet_o be_v and_o will_v be_v betwixt_o one_o particular_a church_n and_o another_o and_o betwixt_o some_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n or_o other_o you_o need_v not_o therefore_o i_o warrant_v you_o one_o whit_n have_v be_v afraid_a that_o caluin_n &_o his_o fellow_n be_v so_o scrupulous_a that_o they_o will_v not_o join_v in_o fellow_n ship_n with_o some_o such_o as_o he_o speak_v of_o there_o and_o yet_o the_o let_v not_o but_z that_o he_o shall_v counsel_v his_o reader_n to_o prefer_v christ_n own_o simple_a institution_n before_o the_o usage_n of_o they_o or_o any_o other_o differ_v from_o it_o the_o xi_o chapter_n you_o do●_n very_o well_o that_o s._n paul_n do_v compare_v many_o time_n the_o mystical_a body_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o a_o natural_a body_n see_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n unto_o who_o the_o body_n be_v join_v by_o joint_n bone_n &_o sinew_n if_o one_o shall_v then_o demand_n of_o you_o how_o the_o foot_n be_v join_v to_o the_o head_n you_o will_v answer_v i_o by_o the_o leg_n which_o be_v next_o unto_o the_o foot_n and_o if_o i_o ask_v you_o how_o the_o leg_n be_v join_v to_o the_o head_n you_o will_v answer_v by_o the_o joint_n and_o by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o back_n and_o so_o consequent_o from_o member_n to_o member_n i_o do_v believe_v that_o we_o be_v all_o of_o one_o accord_n 10._o accord_n 1_o cor._n 10._o that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o so_o consequent_o that_o we_o be_v the_o low_a most_o part_n of_o the_o body_n so_o that_o 〈◊〉_d the_o foot_n or_o the_o leg_n then_o my_o master_n you_o that_o have_v make_v so_o f●ne_a a●_n anatomy_n of_o the_o mass_n at_o my_o request_n make_v another_o of_o the_o ministry_n of_o your_o congregation_n laughter_n congregation_n you_o be_v a_o very_a pleasant_a man_n be_v like_o that_o can_v thus_o play_v yourself_o a_o fit_a of_o mirth_n and_o when_o you_o have_v do_v dance_n after_o your_o own_o pipe_n &_o it_o seem_v you_o think_v that_o the_o sport_n than_o will_v be_v so_o pleasant_a that_o no_o beholder_n can_v forbear_v laughter_n if_o you_o shall_v see_v such_o another_o as_o apelles_n that_o will_v paint_v a_o man_n and_o that_o he_o have_v draw_v his_o head_n and_o without_o paint_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o body_n he_o have_v set_v his_o foot_n under_o his_o ear_n what_o will_v you_o sa●●_n to_o such_o a_o table_n spectatum_fw-la admissi_fw-la risum_fw-la teneatis_fw-la amici_fw-la will_v you_o not_o think_v that_o he_o be_v a_o simple_a painter_n or_o else_o a_o great_a jester_n even_o so_o do_v you_o deserve_v that_o one_o shall_v laugh_v at_o your_o ministry_n fancy_n ministry_n this_o be_v untrue_a and_o a_o gross_a slander_n for_o we_o hold_v and_o teach_v that_o ever_o since_o christ_n to_o our_o day_n there_o have_v be_v both_o shepherd_n and_o sheep_n join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n &_o therefore_o you_o laugh_v at_o your_o own_o shadow_n and_o vain_a fancy_n for_o you_o will_v join_v your_o church_n if_o it_o may_v be_v so_o call_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n without_o set_v forth_o any_o member_n between_o they_o you_o take_v but_o scant_a measure_n when_o you_o will_v cut_v of_o all_o the_o bishop_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n that_o have_v be_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o our_o day_n they_o be_v the_o member_n that_o follow_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n this_o may_v well_o be_v call_v a_o new_a religion_n or_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n it_o be_v a_o mere_a presumption_n to_o fly_v without_o wing_n or_o to_o climb_v without_o a_o ladder_n and_o i_o say_v to_o you_o again_o that_o this_o be_v not_o the_o way_n to_o follow_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o great_a shepherd_n that_o i_o mention_v before_o who_o do_v say_v unto_o we_o that_o if_o we_o will_v not_o miss_v the_o way_n of_o the_o catholic_n we_o ought_v to_o follow_v the_o flock_n of_o those_o sheep_n that_o have_v go_v before_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v reckon_v reason_n reckon_v but_o th●s_n in_o truth_n you_o can_v do_v therefore_o you_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o your_o own_o reason_n by_o succession_n the_o pastor_n that_o have_v succeed_v in_o continuance_n of_o one_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n the_o which_o as_o we_o have_v show_v the_o catholic_a church_n do_v and_o have_v ever_o do_v the_o xi_o chapter_n as_o though_o you_o have_v most_o substantial_o prove_v by_o caluins_n word_n that_o we_o cut_v of_o all_o christian_n betwixt_o the_o apostle_n and_o we_o in_o this_o chapter_n you_o urge_v the_o metaphor_n of_o a_o body_n whereunto_o usual_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v compare_v whereupon_o you_o gather_v that_o as_o there_o be_v a_o orderly_a connexion_n and_o situation_n of_o member_n in_o a_o body_n so_o there_o must_v be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o therefore_o our_o church_n must_v
needs_o be_v a_o monstrous_a misshape_a thing_n in_o join_v the_o christian_n of_o these_o late_a day_n with_o the_o apostle_n without_o any_o betwixt_o and_o fos●●ating_v as_o it_o be_v the_o foot_n of_o the_o body_n hard_o to_o the_o ear_n without_o any_o other_o member_n betwixt_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o and_o thus_o have_v frame_v this_o merry_a conceit_n in_o your_o own_o head_n you_o call_v upon_o your_o friend_n to_o laugh_v at_o it_o with_o you_o and_o so_o you_o proceed_v in_o tell_v we_o that_o while_o we_o take_v this_o course_n we_o fly_v without_o wing_n and_o climb_v without_o a_o ladder_n and_o despise_v the_o counsel_n of_o solomon_n which_o after_o your_o manner_n you_o interpret_v that_o we_o shall_v reckon_v by_o succession_n the_o pastor_n that_o have_v succeed_v in_o continuance_n of_o one_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n the_o which_o you_o say_v you_o have_v show_v you_o have_v do_v to_o what_o purpose_n now_o be_v all_o this_o see_v in_o truth_n neither_o we_o do_v thus_o cut_v of_o all_o christian_n betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o neither_o have_v you_o show_v any_o such_o succession_n of_o pastor_n down_o from_o they_o to_o you_o continue_v in_o your_o doctrine_n true_o to_o no_o other_o purpose_n can_v they_o serve_v but_o to_o express_v your_o own_o ridiculous_a vanity_n howbeit_o because_o you_o call_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n for_o the_o name_n of_o those_o that_o have_v catch_v we_o to_o deny_v your_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o upon_o a_o conceit_n in_o your_o own_o fancy_n that_o you_o have_v pose_v we_o you_o have_v grow_v to_o be_v thus_o full_a of_o these_o swell_a word_n of_o vanity_n and_o because_o i_o fear_v neither_o you_o nor_o many_o of_o your_o disciple_n will_v vouchsafe_v to_o peruse_v those_o book_n that_o i_o send_v you_o unto_o for_o answer_v in_o that_o point_n &_o yet_o have_v hope_n that_o for_o your_o sake_n some_o of_o you_o may_v chance_n vouchsafe_v to_o read_v this_o i_o will_v not_o stick_v with_o you_o particular_o to_o satisfy_v your_o request_n a_o little_a further_o first_o therefore_o understand_v that_o we_o have_v learn_v to_o deny_v your_o kind_n of_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n himself_o the_o institutour_n of_o this_o sacrament_n because_o he_o have_v flat_o and_o vehement_o affirm_v without_o exception_n john_n 6.54_o that_o whosoever_o eat_v his_o flesh_n &_o drink_v his_o blood_n have_v eternal_a life_n whereas_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o your_o doctrine_n it_o follow_v because_o all_o that_o receive_v this_o sacrament_n have_v not_o faith_n but_o many_o lack_v it_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v eat_v of_o many_o that_o shall_v be_v never_n the_o better_a by_o it_o but_o the_o worse_o we_o have_v also_o further_o learn_v it_o of_o he_o in_o that_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n speak_v of_o the_o eat_n of_o his_o body_n &_o drink_v of_o his_o blood_n he_o draw_v his_o hearer_n from_o a_o gross_a conceit_n of_o eat_v &_o drink_v he_o by_o their_o bodily_a mouth_n by_o use_v of_o the_o word_n believe_v in_o stead_n of_o eat_v and_o drink_v ver_fw-la 40.47_o and_o cap._n 7.38_o by_o mention_v unto_o they_o his_o ascension_n john_n 6.62_o &_o latt_o by_o say_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o quicken_v the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o be_v spirit_n &_o life_n ver_fw-la 63._o this_o final_o we_o have_v learn_v of_o he_o say_v if_o any_o shall_v say_v unto_o you_o lo_o here_o be_v christ_n there_o be_v christ_n believe_v it_o not_o math._n 24.23_o &_o by_o his_o continue_v at_o the_o table_n when_o he_o first_o institute_v and_o minister_v it_o unto_o his_o apostle_n without_o alteration_n either_o of_o his_o place_n or_o form_n mat._n 26._o mar._n 12._o luke_n 22.1_o cor._n 11._o the_o apostle_n &_o evamgelist_n have_v also_o teach_v we_o to_o deny_v it_o in_o that_o they_o teach_v we_o that_o he_o visible_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n &_o that_o he_o shall_v so_o also_o come_v again_o when_o he_o come_v from_o thence_o etc._n etc._n act._n 1.11_o especial_o see_v his_o come_n to_o judgement_n be_v call_v his_o second_o come_v heb_fw-mi 9.28_o and_o until_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n it_o be_v say_v by_o peter_n the_o heaven_n must_v contain_v he_o act._n 3.21_o the_o euamgelist_n in_o lay_v down_o unto_o we_o the_o story_n of_o his_o nativity_n life_n &_o death_n so_o prove_v unto_o we_o that_o he_o be_v &_o be_v a_o true_a and_o perfect_a man_n encourage_v we_o also_o lest_o we_o shall_v with_o the_o marcionite_n &_o other_o heretic_n deny_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o manhood_n contant_o to_o ●●●y_v your_o real_a presence_n for_o the_o maintenance_n whereof_o you_o be_v drive_v to_o fancy_n a_o number_n of_o thing_n quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n &_o truth_n of_o his_o manhood_n and_o last_o in_o that_o recite_v the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n they_o tell_v we_o that_o christ_n command_v that_o to_o be_v do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o he_o luke_n 22.19_o 1._o cor._n 11.24_o &_o there_o paul_n say_v v._n 26._o as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n &_o drink_v this_o cup_n you_o show_v the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v which_o word_n plain_o argu_n that_o though_o the_o sacrament_n be_v both_o right_o ministress_n receive_v yet_o it_o infer_v not_o any_o such_o real_a presence_n as_o you_o their_o imag●●_n now_o betwixt_o they_o &_o we_o we_o find_v infinite_a place_n in_o writer_n of_o all_o age_n that_o teach_v we_o still_o to_o deny_v your_o real_a presence_n but_o among_o many_o mark_v these_o for_o example_n tertullian_n in_o his_o 4._o book_n against_o martion_n interprete_v these_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la thus_o that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n augustine_n against_o adamantus_fw-la the_o manichee_n c._n 12._o write_v that_o christ_n doubt_v not_o to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v a_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n &_o upon_o the_o 3_o ps_n he_o say_v that_o christ_n admit_v judas_n to_o a_o banquet_n where_o he_o commend_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n to_o his_o disciple_n &_o upon_o the_o 98._o ps_n he_o say_v you_o shall_v not_o eat_v this_o body_n that_o you_o see_v neither_o shall_v you_o drink_v that_o blood_n which_o they_o shall_v shed_v that_o crucify_v i_o i_o have_v commend_v unto_o you_o a_o certain_a sacrament_n it_o be_v spiritual_o understand_v will_v give_v you_o life_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n therefore_o of_o christian_a doctrine_n he_o write_v thus_o this_o say_n of_o christ_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n seem_v to_o command_v a_o heinous_a thing_n &_o a_o wicked_a therefore_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n command_v we_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o christ_n passion_n keep_v in_o our_o mind_n to_o our_o great_a profit_n &_o comfort_n that_o his_o flesh_n be_v crucify_v &_o wound_v for_o us._n c._n 16._o he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o miserable_a slavery_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o take_v the_o sign_n for_o the_o thing_n signify_v in_o the_o same_o book_n c._n 5._o and_o therefore_o in_o his_o 23._o epistle_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o similitude_n betwixt_o the_o sign_n &_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o one_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o other_o in_o sacrament_n &_o in_o his_o 57_o question_n upon_o levitic_a he_o give_v we_o this_o rule_n the_o thing_n that_o signify_v be_v wont_a to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o signify_v as_o paul_n say_v the_o rock_n be_v christ_n &_o not_o it_o signify_v christ_n but_o even_o as_o it_o have_v be_v indeed_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v not_o christ_n by_o substance_n but_o by_o signification_n so_o that_o his_o usual_a doctrine_n be_v to_o teach_v we_o in_o this_o sacrament_n to_o seek_v christ_n in_o heaven_n by_o faith_n &_o thereby_o to_o make_v he_o present_a which_o otherwise_v be_v absent_a as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o his_o 50._o tract_n upon_o john_n &_o else_o where_o very_a often_o and_o with_o augustine_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n consent_n in_o this_o matter_n &_o therefore_o nothing_o be_v more_o common_a with_o they_o then_o to_o call_v the_o outward_a part_n in_o this_o sacrament_n a_o sign_n figure_n similitude_n resemblance_n or_o representation_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o these_o place_n chrysostom_n in_o his_o 83._o homil_n upon_o mat._n hierom_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n against_o jovinian_a ambr._n in_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n c._n 5._o basil_n in_o his_o lyturgy_n ephr_n in_o his_o 4._o book_n against_o the_o impugner_n of_o christ_n manhood_n by_o humane_a reason_n and_o origen_n upon_o levit_fw-la hom_n 7._o teach_v we_o that_o the_o letter_n
to_o return_v to_o your_o persuasion_n of_o we_o to_o be_v meek_a and_o humble_a etc._n etc._n tell_v i_o in_o good_a earnest_n do_v christ_n at_o any_o time_n obey_v any_o of_o they_o you_o speak_v of_o in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v ill_a and_o be_v there_o not_o a_o necessity_n in_o regard_n of_o our_o redemption_n to_o suffer_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o suffer_v and_o as_o he_o suffer_v they_o at_o their_o hand_n what_o make_v this_o then_o either_o to_o bind_v we_o to_o obey_v the_o wicked_a &_o ungodly_a proceed_n of_o your_o pope_n and_o prelate_n wherein_o only_o we_o refuse_v to_o listen_v unto_o they_o or_o needeles_o to_o suffer_v those_o thing_n at_o your_o hand_n which_o lawful_o we_o may_v avoid_v and_o i_o trust_v you_o be_v persuade_v that_o christ_n himself_o that_o will_v other_o to_o learn_v of_o he_o to_o be_v humble_a and_o meek_a that_o he_o never_o forget_v that_o lesson_n himself_o and_o yet_o if_o you_o read_v mat._n 23._o and_o john_n the_o 8._o you_o shall_v find_v that_o he_o comprise_v the_o high_a priest_n themselves_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o his_o speech_n aswell_o as_o other_o his_o inferior_a malicious_a enemy_n call_v they_o hypocrite_n child_n of_o the_o devil_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o prophet_n though_o they_o be_v not_o to_o learn_v of_o you_o how_o to_o behave_v themselves_o to_o high_a power_n yet_o they_o do_v use_v often_o very_o sharp_a and_o bitter_a speech_n against_o the_o prince_n and_o other_o ruler_n of_o their_o time_n a_o example_n whereof_o you_o have_v esay_n 1.10_o in_o these_o word_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n o_o prince_n of_o sodom_n harken_v to_o the_o law_n of_o our_o god_n o_o people_n of_o gomorrah_n but_o paul_n you_o will_v say_v act._n 23._o have_v call_v a_o wicked_a high_a priest_n that_o contrary_a to_o law_n tyrannous_o have_v command_v he_o to_o be_v smite_v paint_a wall_n be_v admonish_v thereof_o correct_v himself_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v not_o rail_v or_o speak_v ill_a of_o the_o prince_n ex._n 22._o saying_n i_o know_v not_o that_o he_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n indeed_o one_o of_o the_o high_a priest_n clawback_n who_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o justify_v their_o master_n how_o unjust_o soever_o he_o deal_v and_o to_o control_v god_n seruamt_n for_o say_v never_o so_o little_a amiss_o of_o they_o though_o thereunto_o they_o be_v never_o so_o just_o provoke_v give_v he_o a_o check_n therefore_o whereupon_o it_o seem_v that_o paul_n upon_o the_o reason_n aforesaid_a excuse_v himself_o but_o indeed_o he_o do_v it_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o in_o truth_n he_o give_v he_o a_o great_a blow_n though_o somewhat_o more_o covert_o than_o he_o have_v do_v before_o in_o plain_o show_v that_o that_o deal_v of_o his_o consider_v he_o know_v he_o not_o to_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n but_o if_o this_o notwithstanding_o you_o think_v still_o that_o paul_n will_v not_o give_v any_o hard_a speech_n to_o such_o a_o prelate_n and_o justify_v it_o when_o he_o have_v do_v consider_v a_o little_a what_o reckon_n you_o make_v of_o saint_n peter_n and_o then_o call_v to_o remembrance_n what_o be_v write_v gal._n 2._o and_o you_o shall_v find_v it_o clear_a that_o not_o only_o he_o rebuke_v peter_n open_o at_o antioch_n but_o that_o also_o he_o justify_v that_o his_o own_o do_v therein_o say_v that_o he_o do_v so_o because_o he_o go_v not_o with_o the_o right_a foot_n to_o the_o gospel_n and_o learn_v by_o these_o place_n not_o to_o be_v so_o dainty_a over_o your_o pope_n and_o prelate_n hereafter_o but_o that_o if_o they_o do_v lewd_o think_v it_o may_v well_o stand_v with_o that_o meekness_n &_o humility_n that_o christ_n have_v teach_v we_o that_o they_o be_v plain_o as_o they_o deserve_v tell_v of_o their_o do_n by_o us._n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o rafle_v of_o they_o that_o be_v in_o lawful_a authority_n and_o to_o backbite_v and_o deprave_v they_o and_o another_o thing_n it_o be_v by_o way_n of_o instruction_n admonition_n and_o reprehension_n by_o plain_a just_a and_o true_a term_n to_o let_v they_o see_v their_o fault_n so_o it_o be_v do_v in_o time_n and_o place_n convenient_a &_o in_o manner_n beseem_v such_o a_o action_n this_o late_a might_n the_o jew_n do_v to_o nabuchadnezzar_n notwithstanding_o jeremies_n word_n and_o the_o christian_n under_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n to_o they_o and_o yet_o both_o keep_v within_o duty_n and_o loialty_n but_o the_o former_a be_v that_o which_o be_v unlawful_a to_o be_v use_v against_o any_o how_o bad_a soever_o he_o be_v that_o be_v in_o place_n of_o lawful_a magistracy_n or_o office_n final_o whereas_o you_o yet_o think_v scorn_n that_o your_o pope_n shall_v be_v worse_o than_o nabuchadnezzar_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o jew_n may_v have_v have_v far_o more_o just_a exception_n against_o he_o to_o free_v they_o from_o their_o obedience_n and_o submission_n to_o he_o than_o we_o have_v to_o free_v we_o from_o subjection_n to_o your_o pope_n in_o truth_n therein_o you_o be_v very_o much_o deceive_v for_o first_o his_o authority_n as_o a_o king_n over_o they_o be_v a_o power_n in_o itself_o lawful_a though_o abuse_v by_o he_o and_o you_o as_o i_o have_v show_v be_v flat_o unlawful_a and_o the_o jew_n be_v command_v subjection_n unto_o he_o and_o we_o be_v command_v as_o i_o have_v say_v revel_v 18_o to_o forsake_v all_o communion_n with_o your_o popish_a antichristian_a kingdom_n your_o pope_n for_o lewdness_n of_o life_n for_o manifold_a idolatry_n and_o blasphemy_n in_o religion_n and_o for_o want_v of_o right_a title_n to_o the_o dignity_n and_o office_n which_o they_o claim_v doubtless_o will_v thorough_o match_v he_o &_o by_o how_o much_o their_o knowledge_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o mean_n they_o have_v which_o he_o lack_v shall_v be_v more_o than_o he_o by_o so_o much_o these_o thing_n in_o they_o make_v they_o more_o intolerable_a than_o the_o same_o can_v make_v he_o and_o therefore_o these_o thing_n consider_v the_o obedience_n and_o submission_n which_o the_o jew_n be_v enjoin_v to_o yield_v to_o nabuchadnezzar_n infer_v not_o the_o like_a to_o be_v due_a to_o your_o pope_n and_o other_o your_o romish_a prelate_n the_o xvii_o chapter_n any_o man_n may_v easy_o perceive_v by_o this_o discourse_n that_o you_o have_v no_o great_a reason_n in_o say_v that_o that_o you_o say_v and_o much_o less_o to_o do_v that_o that_o you_o preach_v i_o mean_v to_o begin_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o way_n of_o force_n the_o which_o be_v a_o thing_n contrary_n to_o all_o law_n divine_a and_o humane_a which_o defend_v jud_v defend_v cod._n ut_fw-la nemo_fw-la in_o suâ_fw-la causâ_fw-la jud_v that_o cause_n that_o this_o be_v your_o deal_n flat_a for_o your_o pope_n be_v the_o party_n many_o way_n most_o just_o charge_v by_o we_o &_o yet_o he_o will_v be_v the_o supreme_a judge_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n one_o shall_v be_v judge_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n and_o you_o will_v not_o only_o be_v a_o judge_n but_o a_o party_n resemble_v in_o this_o he_o that_o give_v the_o blow_n to_o christ_n unto_o who_o the_o answer_n be_v make_v 15._o make_v b_o job_n 15._o 18._o 15._o well_o hit_v again_o 15._o for_o 18._o if_o we_o have_v do_v ill_o do_v ill_o this_o always_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o do_v prove_v it_o before_o the_o judge_n see_v that_o you_o be_v our_o accuser_n if_o you_o say_v that_o god_n have_v give_v you_o power_n to_o know_v to_o judge_v and_o to_o exempt_v that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o drive_v we_o out_o of_o our_o possession_n and_o to_o cause_v the_o people_n to_o forsake_v that_o religion_n which_o they_o have_v maintain_v question_n maintain_v it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o repeat_v this_o brag_n so_o often_o and_o never_o to_o go_v about_o in_o all_o your_o book_n once_o to_o prove_v it_o which_o you_o know_v be_v the_o main_a question_n these_o 1500._o year_n &_o upward_o show_v we_o your_o commission_n with_o as_o sure_a a_o warrant_n as_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n do_v require_v see_v that_o you_o say_v that_o you_o be_v send_v extraordinarilie_o as_o moses_n be_v to_o redeem_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n out_o of_o the_o captivity_n of_o egypt_n that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a unto_o your_o interpretation_n the_o child_n of_o god_n &_o the_o true_a faithful_a out_o of_o the_o false_a religion_n of_o the_o papist_n of_o that_o which_o the_o pope_n antichrist_n &_o worse_o they_o pharaoh_n be_v the_o head_n &_o master_n thus_o you_o use_v to_o expound_v &_o moralizate_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n yet_o be_v it_o so_o that_o when_o god_n speak_v unto_o you_o about_o so_o zealous_a a_o thing_n as_o this_o you_o
account_v among_o we_o a_o sound_a preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v either_o say_v that_o thus_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v receive_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n or_o have_v attempt_v so_o to_o do_v for_o it_o be_v general_o hold_v and_o receive_v of_o all_o the_o church_n that_o profess_v the_o gospel_n and_o so_o likewise_o be_v their_o uniform_a practice_n that_o none_o be_v suffer_v to_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n unless_o it_o be_v know_v and_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o by_o the_o ordinary_a call_n of_o some_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n where_o he_o be_v order_v he_o be_v sufficient_o authorish_v so_o to_o do_v and_o well_o know_v it_o be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o church_n that_o profess_v the_o gospel_n indeed_o but_o the_o order_n thereof_o be_v that_o none_o meddle_v in_o the_o ministry_n therein_o without_o commission_n as_o it_o please_v you_o to_o speak_v either_o from_o some_o convenient_a number_n of_o pastor_n or_o from_o some_o bishop_n or_o from_o both_o by_o the_o order_n of_o that_o church_n appoint_v to_o look_v to_o and_o to_o take_v care_n of_o that_o business_n as_o for_o the_o anabaptist_n a_o captain_n whereof_o you_o name_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n we_o know_v that_o in_o their_o fantastical_a spirit_n they_o both_o hold_v and_o practice_v as_o here_o you_o charge_v we_o but_o therein_o and_o therefore_o we_o dislike_v &_o condemn_v they_o as_o much_o as_o you_o and_o you_o know_v we_o renounce_v communion_n with_o they_o we_o count_v they_o heretic_n &_o therefore_o sundry_a of_o we_o purposely_o have_v write_v large_a and_o vehement_a book_n against_o they_o you_o do_v we_o therefore_o great_a wrong_n to_o charge_v we_o with_o that_o which_o be_v their_o fault_n &_o which_o you_o can_v prove_v to_o be_v we_o but_o you_o will_v say_v i_o be_o sure_a for_o in_o your_o former_a chap._n you_o seem_v to_o derive_v muncer_n the_o anabaptist_n his_o pedigree_n from_o luther_n that_o we_o may_v worthy_o so_o be_v charge_v for_o they_o be_v such_o as_o spring_v of_o and_o from_o us._n but_o herein_o again_o you_o offer_v we_o as_o great_a wrong_n as_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o good_a seed_n man_n that_o sow_v only_o good_a seed_n in_o his_o field_n shall_v have_v do_v he_o if_o they_o have_v say_v that_o the_o tare_n that_o come_v up_o therewith_o in_o the_o same_o field_n have_v be_v there_o sow_v by_o he_o because_o when_o christ_n his_o apostle_n and_o faithful_a minister_n have_v first_o preach_v the_o gospel_n there_o be_v find_v in_o the_o same_o age_n spring_v up_o with_o the_o same_o &_o among_o the_o professor_n thereof_o ebionite_n cerinthian_o nicolaitan_o simonist_n and_o sundry_a other_o fantastical_a heretic_n as_o hymeneus_n philetus_n hermogines_n and_o phygetus_n be_v it_o any_o reason_n therefore_o that_o christ_n or_o any_o of_o his_o faithful_a minister_n or_o that_o the_o gospel_n itself_o shall_v be_v charge_v with_o their_o fond_a conceit_n and_o yet_o as_o absurd_a &_o senseless_a as_o this_o kind_n of_o deal_v be_v it_o be_v both_o here_o with_o you_o oft_o in_o this_o your_o book_n &_o usual_a be_v it_o with_o all_o of_o your_o spirit_n this_o now_o for_o want_n of_o better_a matter_n against_o we_o by_o this_o mean_n with_o the_o simple_a people_n to_o labour_v the_o discredit_n and_o disgrace_n both_o of_o we_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n but_o you_o content_v not_o yourself_o with_o false_o charge_v we_o to_o say_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v receive_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n extraordinary_o but_o also_o you_o lay_v to_o our_o charge_n that_o we_o seek_v still_o to_o defend_v a_o ill_a cause_n and_o a_o extraordinary_a commission_n this_o you_o only_o say_v as_o your_o manner_n be_v but_o neither_o proof_n nor_o shadow_n of_o proof_n you_o bring_v neither_o indeed_o can_v you_o for_o our_o cause_n be_v the_o very_a truth_n and_o our_o commission_n be_v but_o that_o ordinary_a commission_n of_o teach_v and_o confirm_v the_o same_o unto_o man_n that_o christ_n have_v leave_v by_o his_o own_o ordinance_n to_o all_o his_o faithful_a minister_n unto_o the_o world_n end_n and_o for_o proof_n hereof_o we_o appeal_v indeed_o to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o in_o this_o case_n even_o for_o the_o reason_n by_o you_o allege_v we_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o sound_a touchstone_n of_o truth_n and_o to_o be_v prefer_v in_o credit_n before_o miracle_n yet_o you_o some_o thing_n amplify_v and_o add_v unto_o our_o speech_n in_o that_o you_o say_v we_o affirm_v that_o the_o scripture_n as_o they_o be_v allege_v by_o we_o alone_o aught_o to_o be_v of_o more_o credit_n than_o all_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o the_o apostle_n well_o this_o our_o reason_n to_o justify_v our_o cause_n and_o commission_n you_o say_v be_v a_o notable_a way_n to_o deceive_v the_o simple_a and_o unlearned_a i_o wonder_v that_o you_o be_v not_o ashamed_a and_o affraied_a so_o to_o write_v for_o you_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o to_o confute_v error_n to_o prove_v truth_n to_o exhort_v to_o virtue_n and_o to_o dehort_v from_o vice_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o so_o from_o time_n to_o time_n the_o ancient_a father_n what_o adversary_n soever_o they_o have_v to_o deal_v withal_o use_v always_o to_o fly_v to_o this_o touchstone_n and_o for_o the_o most_o certain_a conclude_v of_o their_o purpose_n do_v allege_v scripture_n but_o your_o shift_n will_v be_v that_o these_o allege_v the_o scripture_n right_o which_o you_o speak_v not_o of_o and_o we_o allege_v the_o scripture_n corrupt_o and_o in_o a_o wrong_a sense_n &_o therefore_o you_o will_v have_v your_o word_n in_o all_o this_o your_o discourse_n against_o our_o allege_v of_o scripture_n to_o be_v take_v as_o write_v not_o simple_o against_o allege_v of_o scripture_n but_o against_o allege_v it_o as_o we_o do_v then_o i_o answer_v that_o that_o you_o shall_v have_v prove_v that_o we_o allege_v the_o scripture_n in_o a_o wrong_a sense_n but_o this_o you_o have_v not_o once_o go_v about_o only_o you_o prove_v that_o bare_a allege_v of_o scripture_n can_v nor_o may_v not_o so_o countenance_v our_o cause_n as_o we_o pretend_v for_o that_o sundry_a heretic_n have_v countenance_v their_o heresy_n by_o allege_v scripture_n and_o that_o often_o very_o plentiful_o about_o this_o you_o spend_v sundry_a chapter_n and_o withal_o to_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v able_a if_o you_o listen_v to_o be_v a_o cunning_a in_o wrest_v of_o the_o scripture_n as_o any_o of_o the_o heretic_n you_o mention_v all_o which_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n unless_o withal_o you_o have_v prove_v which_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o do_v that_o we_o allege_v they_o do_v allege_v they_o so_o likewise_o for_o we_o be_v not_o so_o simple_a or_o ignorant_a that_o we_o know_v not_o that_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v and_o may_v be_v misalleadge_v as_o you_o write_v and_o therefore_o we_o never_o go_v about_o to_o persuade_v the_o people_n that_o they_o must_v and_o aught_o to_o believe_v we_o for_o our_o bare_a allege_v of_o scripture_n but_o for_o that_o by_o the_o sound_a rule_n of_o interpret_n of_o they_o we_o prove_v forcible_o and_o invincible_o unto_o their_o conscience_n that_o we_o allege_v they_o according_a to_o their_o true_a and_o native_a meaning_n we_o call_v upon_o they_o with_o christ_n to_o search_v the_o scripture_n themselves_o john_n 5_o 39_o and_o with_o paul_n we_o exhort_v they_o so_o to_o travail_v therein_o as_o that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n dwell_v even_o in_o themselves_o plentiful_o in_o all_o wisdom_n coloss_n 3.16_o that_o so_o according_a to_o the_o commend_a example_n of_o the_o noble_a man_n of_o baerea_n act._n 17.11_o and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n john_n they_o may_v try_v the_o spirit_n of_o they_o that_o will_v seem_v to_o teach_v they_o a_o right_n before_o they_o believe_v they_o 1._o john_n 4.15_o we_o confess_v glad_o with_o peter_n 2._o epist_n cap._n 1._o 20._o 21._o that_o no_o pprophecy_n nor_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o any_o private_a interpretation_n and_o all_o such_o interpretation_n we_o count_v and_o judge_v private_a and_o humane_a whosoever_o gyve_n or_o allow_v they_o that_o be_v not_o indeed_o sound_o agree_v with_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o therefore_o we_o hold_v and_o teach_v for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o natural_a man_n understand_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 1._o cor._n 1.15_o that_o no_o man_n in_o allege_v and_o cite_v of_o the_o scripture●_n be_v to_o trust_v to_o his_o own_o wisdom_n or_o learning_n but_o according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o s._n james_n find_v himself_o in_o this_o case_n to_o lack_v wisdom_n we_o exhort_v all_o man_n
which_o be_v but_o a_o man_n &_o often_o time_n a_o ignorant_a &_o wicked_a man_n to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n and_o have_v indeed_o no_o true_a acquaintance_n with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n nor_o any_o true_a desire_n after_o knowledge_n but_o rather_o after_o ignorance_n because_o that_o be_v the_o best_a foundation_n of_o your_o religion_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o fashion_n be_v you_o measure_v another_o 〈…〉_o by_o your_o own_o happy_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v as_o hard_a to_o all_o other_o as_o to_o yourselves_o and_o thereupon_o by_o the_o hardness_n thereof_o discourage_v they_o from_o read_v they_o as_o much_o as_o you_o can_v i_o be_o sure_a whatsoever_o you_o or_o any_o of_o your_o fellow_n prate_v hereof_o that_o therein_o be_v contain_v the_o will_n and_o testament_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n and_o that_o this_o pertain_v to_o simple_a and_o unlearned_a artificer_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o great_a learned_a man_n of_o this_o world_n for_o therein_o and_o thereby_o i_o know_v that_o god_n be_v no_o accepter_n of_o person_n and_o therefore_o so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o any_o hardness_n of_o term_n or_o phrase_n therein_o contain_v to_o express_v unto_o they_o or_o bequeath_v unto_o they_o their_o heavenly_a father_n behest_n and_o bequeste_n shall_v drive_v they_o from_o the_o read_n and_o study_v of_o they_o that_o so_o much_o the_o more_o pain_n and_o diligence_n they_o ought_v to_o use_v to_o atteyne_v to_o the_o right_a sense_n thereof_o for_o we_o see_v in_o our_o earthly_a father_n will_n the_o hard_a the_o tearines_n and_o phrase_n be_v wherein_o he_o have_v give_v we_o any_o thing_n or_o will_v we_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n nature_n &_o reason_n have_v teach_v we_o not_o therefore_o to_o take_v and_o bestow_v less_o pain_n &_o cost_n but_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o to_o seek_v to_o understand_v the_o same_o how_o much_o more_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v so_o in_o this_o case_n and_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o our_o heavenly_a father_n have_v so_o temper_v hardness_n with_o plainness_n &_o plainness_n with_o hardness_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o plainness_n may_v allure_v and_o encourage_v every_o simple_a man_n to_o read_v &_o study_v they_o with_o hope_n to_o understand_v they_o &_o that_o the_o other_o may_v admonish_v he_o to_o be_v no_o negligent_a but_o a_o careful_a &_o wise_a peruser_n of_o they_o &_o so_o both_o together_o make_v every_o one_o a_o willing_a and_o studious_a reader_n of_o they_o which_o it_o shall_v seem_v both_o fulgentius_n in_o his_o sermon_n of_o the_o confessor_n &_o gregory_n in_o his_o epist_n to_o leander_n have_v observe_v in_o note_v that_o god_n have_v so_o order_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o therein_o he_o have_v provide_v for_o the_o strong_a man_n meat_n &_o for_o the_o weakling_n milk_n and_o that_o there_o both_o the_o elephant_n may_v swim_v and_o the_o lamb_n safe_o wade_v these_o thing_n notwithstanding_o &_o whatsoever_o else_o may_v be_v say_v further_a to_o this_o purpose_n i_o perceive_v that_o you_o in_o this_o your_o long_a discourse_n of_o the_o heretic_n abuse_v and_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n care_v not_o how_o little_a otherwise_o that_o which_o you_o write_v be_v to_o the_o purpose_n so_o the_o thereby_o you_o may_v gain_v thus_o much_o as_o by_o such_o experiment_n to_o withdraw_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n from_o the_o love_n &_o study_v of_o the_o scripture_n for_o i_o know_v they_o great_o cumber_v you_o &_o stand_v in_o your_o way_n and_o therefore_o by_o your_o will_n you_o care_v not_o if_o the_o people_n never_o hear_v of_o they_o whereof_o you_o have_v give_v a_o invincible_a demonstration_n in_o that_o you_o have_v keep_v they_o hide_v and_o shut_v up_o from_o they_o as_o long_o as_o you_o 〈◊〉_d under_o the_o close_a bushel_n of_o a_o unknowen_a tongue_n and_o your_o goodwill_n towards_o thou_o have_v otherwise_o be_v sufficient_o bewray_v by_o the_o unreverent_a and_o disgrace_v speech_n utter_v by_o your_o chief_a &_o great_a champion_n against_o they_o as_o it_o be_v well_o know_v too_o too_o often_o for_o first_o for_o their_o authority_n though_o now_o some_o of_o your_o side_n will_v seem_v in_o that_o point_n to_o speak_v more_o modest_o not_o long_o ago_o piggins_n a_o great_a man_n in_o his_o time_n with_o you_o in_o the_o first_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n of_o his_o hierarchy_n have_v flat_o write_v that_o all_o authority_n of_o scripture_n now_o necessary_o depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o otherwise_o we_o can_v not_o believe_v they_o but_o because_o we_o believe_v the_o church_n that_o give_v testimony_n unto_o they_o add_v further_o that_o mark_v and_o luke_n be_v not_o of_o themselves_o sufficient_a witness_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o write_v that_o they_o may_v be_v above_o our_o faith_n and_o religion_n but_o rather_o to_o be_v subject_a thereunto_o and_o ecchius_n another_o great_a doctor_n of_o you_o of_o the_o same_o time_n in_o his_o enchiridion_n write_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o of_o authentic_a authority_n but_o through_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o he_o bold_o affirm_v that_o to_o say_v that_o great_a be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n then_o of_o the_o church_n be_v heretical_a and_o the_o contrary_n be_v catholic_a and_o whereas_o it_o be_v object_v by_o brentius_n in_o the_o confession_n of_o wittingberge_n that_o one_o of_o your_o crew_n mean_v thereby_o one_o herman_n have_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n shall_v have_v have_v no_o great_a estimation_n or_o credit_n than_o aesop_n fable_n but_o for_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n hosius_n a_o bishop_n and_o cardinal_n of_o you_o write_v against_o the_o say_v brentius_n in_o his_o three_o book_n be_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n defend_v it_o as_o well_o enough_o speak_v for_o say_v he_o unless_o the_o church_n have_v teach_v we_o which_o be_v scripture_n canonical_a it_o can_v have_v have_v small_a authority_n with_o us._n likewise_o teach_v melchior_n canus_n in_o his_o second_o book_n &_o seven_o chapter_n of_o his_o place_n of_o divinity_n that_o it_o appear_v not_o to_o we_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n insomuch_o that_o she_o must_v determine_v say_v he_o what_o book_n be_v canonical_a and_o her_o authority_n be_v a_o certain_a rule_n whereby_o either_o to_o receive_v or_o to_o reject_v book_n into_o or_o out_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o judgement_n be_v canisius_n in_o his_o catechism_n ca._n 30._o sect_n 16._o and_o stapleton_n in_o his_o first_o chapter_n of_o his_o nine_o book_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o doctrine_n with_o a_o great_a rabble_n more_o of_o your_o writer_n of_o great_a account_n since_o luther_n and_o this_o position_n so_o like_v ecchius_n that_o in_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v he_o write_v of_o the_o margin_n achilles_n against_o this_o position_n to_o insinuate_v that_o this_o be_v a_o special_a try_a captain_n of_o you_o and_o yet_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o your_o meaning_n all_o this_o while_n be_v by_o the_o church_n to_o understand_v only_o the_o pope_n forasmuch_o as_o none_o but_o he_o have_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o church_n in_o weeld_v for_o catherine_n in_o epistolam_fw-la ad_fw-la galatas_fw-la cap._n 2._o hold_v that_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n proper_a privilege_n to_o canonize_v or_o to_o reject_v from_o the_o canon_n scripture_n which_o be_v also_o canus_n five_o proposition_n in_o effect_n in_o the_o chapter_n before_o name_v this_o be_v your_o meaning_n &_o leo_n the_o ten_o be_v one_o of_o your_o pope_n what_o canonical_a authority_n have_v you_o leave_v the_o scripture_n if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o be_v write_v of_o he_o that_o he_o talk_v with_o bembus_n then_o a_o cardinal_n contemptuous_o say_v speak_v of_o the_o gospel_n that_o that_o fable_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v very_o profitable_a unto_o they_o and_o as_o for_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o the_o sense_n &_o insufficiency_n of_o they_o who_o know_v not_o what_o cost_v usual_o always_o upon_o every_o light_a occasion_n you_o be_v ready_a to_o bestow_v in_o amplify_a the_o hardness_n of_o they_o &_o in_o either_o prefer_n therefore_o or_o equal_v the_o unwriten_a word_n with_o you_o call_v the_o lively_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n before_o they_o both_o for_o plainness_n &_o sufficiency_n when_o you_o be_v in_o this_o vain_a both_o the_o father_n of_o colen_n shall_v be_v justify_v and_o piggius_n also_o by_o your_o andradius_fw-la orthodox_n epl._n li._n 2._o p._n 104._o though_o they_o compare_v the_o scripture_n to_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n &_o he_o to_o a_o leaden_a lesbian_a rule_n and_o to_o their_o further_a
show_v yourself_o to_o be_v not_o only_o one_o that_o dare_v write_v any_o thing_n how_o gross_a a_o lie_n soever_o it_o be_v but_o as_o malicious_a in_o your_o judgement_n as_o ever_o be_v any_o first_o you_o set_v down_o not_o only_o that_o the_o anabaptist_n condemn_v they_o that_o die_v in_o luther_n &_o caluins_n religion_n to_o hell_n which_o be_v likely_a enough_o because_o they_o be_v frantic_a heretic_n &_o have_v deny_v the_o foundation_n but_o also_o the_o lutheran_n and_o caluinist_n will_n &_o do_v give_v that_o judgement_n one_o of_o another_o and_o yet_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o be_v not_o able_a true_o to_o say_v that_o ever_o any_o of_o caluins_n judgement_n say_v or_o write_v so_o second_o though_o your_o own_o judgement_n be_v short_a yet_o so_o it_o be_v set_v down_o that_o you_o show_v that_o you_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o three_o sort_n go_v thither_o and_o such_o care_n &_o compassion_n your_o catholic_a heart_n have_v of_o it_o when_o you_o have_v do_v that_o you_o jest_n at_o it_o account_v yourselves_o fool_n if_o you_o shall_v stay_v their_o passage_n thither_o for_o if_o we_o be_v all_o go_v for_o company_n you_o think_v you_o shall_v be_v at_o quiet_a you_o say_v &_o hell_n will_v be_v so_o full_a that_o the_o devil_n will_v long_o for_o no_o more_o company_n be_v this_o your_o popish_a divinity_n to_o make_v sport_n at_o the_o damnation_n of_o man_n and_o hold_v you_o this_o for_o a_o principle_n that_o it_o be_v folly_n to_o stay_v man_n from_o run_v together_o to_o hell_n indeed_o it_o may_v be_v for_o i_o have_v read_v that_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n among_o you_o that_o if_o your_o pope_n lead_v headlong_o with_o he_o multitude_n by_o heap_n to_o hell_n yet_o no_o man_n may_v be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o say_v unto_o he_o why_o do_v thou_o so_o distinct_a 40._o cap._n si_fw-mi papa_n but_o howsoever_o you_o account_v this_o divinity_n certain_a i_o be_o you_o will_v find_v it_o that_o in_o no_o two_o thing_n more_o the_o devil_n show_v themselves_o devil_n then_o in_o these_o in_o laugh_v and_o rejoice_v in_o the_o damnation_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o in_o let_v they_o go_v free_o for_o company_n to_o hell_n without_o stoppage_n as_o many_o as_o will_n true_o true_o god_n must_v take_v from_o you_o this_o profane_a and_o devilish_a spirit_n of_o you_o and_o give_v you_o grace_n to_o repent_v of_o it_o or_o else_o you_o may_v be_v sure_a how_o many_o soever_o die_v and_o go_v to_o hell_n before_o you_o hell_n will_v long_o for_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v place_n and_o room_n enough_o there_o i_o warrant_v you_o the_o xxxii_o chapter_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a minister_n of_o the_o lutheran_n call_v faction_n call_v what_o will_v not_o a_o passionate_a adversary_n say_v to_o disgrace_v they_o that_o he_o write_v against_o if_o like_a testimony_n of_o man_n of_o your_o religion_n write_v yet_o in_o some_o point_v one_o against_o another_o will_v be_v admit_v it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n thus_o to_o discredit_v your_o whole_a faction_n heshusius_fw-la the_o which_o within_o these_o three_o year_n have_v make_v a_o book_n against_o caluin_n peter_n boquin_n theodore_n de_fw-fr beza_n &_o gulielmus_fw-la elcimalcius_fw-la &_o he_o say_v among_o other_o thing_n that_o carolstadius_n zuenfeldius_n caluin_n &_o beza_n do_v show_v well_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o their_o faith_n by_o the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n that_o there_o be_v among_o they_o the_o which_o fault_n say_v he_o do_v proceed_v of_o this_o that_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o their_o own_o head_n himself_o head_n and_o yet_o in_o truth_n lie_v therein_o himself_o and_o in_o that_o very_a book_n the_o say_v author_n do_v give_v the_o lie_n to_o caluin_n because_o that_o in_o that_o he_o write_v against_o the_o above_o name_v westphal_n he_o say_v that_o martin_n luther_n and_o his_o adherent_n do_v acknowledge_v he_o as_o their_o brother_n the_o which_o thing_n he_o maintain_v to_o be_v false_a us._n false_a great_a &_o more_o disagreement●_n there_o be_v among_o you_o papist_n and_o therefore_o these_o conclusion_n press_v you_o rather_o than_o us._n thus_o see_v you_o agree_v together_o like_o dog_n and_o cat_n &_o that_o all_o these_o sect_n have_v confirm_v their_o false_a doctrine_n with_o the_o shed_n of_o their_o own_o blood_n it_o be_v best_o to_o conclude_v as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pain_n nor_o the_o torment_n that_o do_v make_v the_o righteous_a martyr_n except_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o diverse_a contrary_a messenger_n be_v send_v from_o one_o master_n the_o which_o be_v notorious_o false_a for_o that_o good_a king_n from_o who_o the_o truth_n do_v come_v indeed_o have_v so_o good_a a_o memory_n that_o he_o do_v never_o send_v contrary_a messenger_n but_o rather_o his_o faithful_a seruamt_n do_v all_o with_o one_o voice_n and_o one_o accord_n honour_v he_o as_o the_o father_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n the_o xxxii_o chapter_n here_o again_o as_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n you_o labour_v to_o discredit_v caluin_n beza_n and_o other_o only_o with_o the_o testimony_n of_o heshusius_fw-la a_o utter_a enemy_n of_o they_o about_o the_o quarrel_n of_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n who_o heat_n of_o contention_n and_o a_o desire_n therefore_o to_o disgrace_v his_o adversary_n rather_o than_o just_a cause_n lead_v thus_o to_o write_v for_o what_o reason_n have_v he_o there_o to_o join_v zuenfeldius_n with_o caluin_n and_o beza_n with_o who_o they_o hold_v no_o more_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n than_o he_o himself_o and_o corolstadius_fw-la who_o be_v a_o doctor_n in_o wittenberg_n in_o luther_n time_n and_o a_o associate_n to_o he_o in_o disputation_n against_o ecchius_n he_o may_v with_o more_o reason_n have_v join_v with_o luther_n himself_o and_o his_o partner_n then_o with_o these_o and_o howsoever_o the_o intemperate_a heat_n of_o contention_n embolden_v heshusius_fw-la to_o give_v caluin_n the_o lie_n most_o certain_a yet_o it_o be_v that_o melancthon_n a_o great_a friend_n of_o luther_n who_o heshusius_fw-la can_v deny_v be_v a_o adherent_a of_o luther_n account_v of_o caluin_n as_o of_o a_o good_a brother_n for_o in_o a_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v to_o he_o he_o call_v he_o charissim●_n fratrem_fw-la most_o dear_a brother_n it_o be_v the_o 187._o epistle_n in_o the_o book_n of_o caluins_n epistle_n and_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o what_o caluin_n write_v he_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v in_o this_o behalf_n how_o rude_o soever_o angry_a heshusius_fw-la give_v he_o the_o lie_n this_o objection_n of_o our_o disagreement_n have_v be_v oft_o enough_o urge_v and_o answer_v already_o it_o seem_v that_o you_o have_v great_a penury_n of_o argument_n against_o we_o when_o this_o must_v come_v in_o thus_o often_o especial_o see_v as_o i_o have_v show_v great_a contention_n have_v be_v among_o yourselves_o in_o which_o case_n will_v you_o have_v think_v a_o man_n shall_v have_v deal_v well_o with_o you_o if_o the_o bitter_a speech_n of_o the_o one_o side_n have_v always_o be_v take_v as_o sufficient_a argument_n to_o disgrace_v the_o other_o or_o will_v you_o have_v like_v that_o thereupon_o a_o man_n shall_v infer_v as_o you_o do_v that_o you_o agree_v no_o better_o than_o dog_n and_o cat_n and_o that_o therefore_o you_o so_o differ_v among_o yourselves_o come_v not_o both_o from_o one_o master_n god_n who_o use_v not_o to_o send_v contrary_a messenger_n this_o have_v be_v a_o hard_a conclusion_n against_o a_o number_n of_o you_o in_o the_o time_n of_o your_o schism_n betwixt_o your_o pope_n and_o antipope_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o contention_n of_o your_o friar_n with_o your_o other_o prelate_n and_o also_o among_o themselves_o whereof_o i_o have_v put_v you_o in_o remembrance_n before_o chapter_n twenty_o eight_o and_o yet_o if_o you_o will_v needs_o meet_v this_o measure_n unto_o we_o upon_o occasion_n of_o this_o one_o controversy_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n you_o must_v be_v content_v that_o upon_o more_o and_o great_a contention_n among_o you_o we_o send_v you_o home_o as_o good_a measure_n again_o as_o for_o your_o conclusion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pain_n but_o the_o cause_n that_o make_v a_o true_a martyr_n we_o grant_v it_o you_o at_o the_o first_o but_o where_o to_o make_v way_n to_o bring_v it_o in_o here_o again_o you_o insinuate_v not_o only_o that_o the_o donatist_n adamite_n seruetus_fw-la and_o the_o anabaptiste_n of_o who_o you_o have_v speak_v in_o your_o former_a chapter_n have_v die_v to_o confirm_v their_o false_a religion_n which_o we_o grant_v you_o but_o that_o these_o also_o that_o you_o speak_v of_o last_o lutheran_n and_o zuenfeldians_n have_v
have_v the_o grace_n that_o be_v inspire_v in_o he_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n at_o his_o baptism_n so_o long_o he_o do_v not_o sin_n unto_o eternal_a death_n death_n death_n yea_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o great_a comfort_n of_o they_o that_o be_v once_o true_o regenerate_v teach_v in_o these_o place_n that_o such_o by_o the_o power_n of_o that_o grace_n shall_v be_v so_o preserve_v that_o they_o shall_v never_o sin_v as_o the_o unregenera●_n do_v with_o their_o whole_a man_n unto_o death_n for_o the_o generation_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o grace_n receive_v by_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n do_v so_o defend_v he_o that_o the_o devil_n can_v persecute_v he_o to_o death_n be_v not_o able_a to_o prevail_v against_o he_o and_o as_o long_o as_o this_o good_a seed_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v dwell_v in_o he_o he_o can_v sin_v and_o if_o he_o do_v sin_n the_o seed_n will_v no_o long_o remain_v in_o he_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v 1._o say_v sap._n 1._o the_o wiseman_n shall_v refuse_v the_o hypocrite_n and_o dissembler_n and_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o vain_a and_o crafty_a cogitation_n and_o therefore_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o sin_n can_v not_o dwell_v together_o nor_o we_o ought_v not_o think_v s._n johns_n word_n strange_a in_o that_o he_o say_v that_o he_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n do_v not_o sin_n for_o it_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o that_o one_o can_v not_o serve_v two_o master_n and_o that_o he_o that_o serve_v god_n can_v not_o serve_v the_o devil_n for._n s._n paul_n say_v 10._o say_v 1._o cor._n 10._o you_o can_v assist_v at_o the_o table_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o devil_n altogether_o for_o what_o communication_n be_v there_o between_o justice_n and_o iniquity_n or_o between_o jesus_n christ_n and_o belial_n and_o he_o that_o do_v love_v this_o world_n declare_v himself_o a_o enemy_n unto_o god_n and_o a_o little_a before_o he_o have_v say_v he_o that_o do_v commit_v sin_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o which_o do_v not_o affirm_v that_o a_o sinner_n can_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n if_o he_o repent_v and_o do_v penance_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n else_o while_n if_o this_o assertion_n be_v true_a ●●en_o as_o often_o as_o the_o regenerate_a either_o actual_o sin_v or_o have_v but_o a_o mind_n to_o sin_n he_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o god_n i_o will_v glad_o know_v they_o h_z w_z often_o the_o author_n have_v continue_v a_o more●h_a the_o child_n of_o god_n together_o or_o any_o man_n else_o he_o that_o be_v in_o actual_a sin_n or_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o do_v evil_a be_v as_o than_o not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o the_o son_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o good_a tree_n do_v not_o bear_v ill_a fruit_n for_o although_o the_o fruit_n do_v rot_v or_o perish_v upon_o the_o tree_n that_o corruption_n do_v not_o proceed_v of_o the_o tree_n but_o of_o the_o worm_n bird_n or_o of_o some_o other_o kind_n of_o vermin_n and_o therefore_o when_o they_o say_v that_o by_o the_o fruit_n we_o shall_v know_v the_o tree_n and_o by_o the_o work_v the_o faith_n this_o aught_o to_o be_v understand_v when_o the_o fruit_n do_v ripe_a in_o season_n and_o that_o it_o have_v the_o natural_a humour_n and_o property_n of_o the_o tree_n and_o in_o a_o man_n that_o he_o have_v the_o influence_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n &_o not_o otherwise_o for_o even_o as_o the_o rot_a fruit_n hang_v upon_o the_o tree_n do_v digress_v nothing_o from_o the_o good_a stock_n even_o so_o the_o ill_a work_n of_o we_o that_o be_v christian_n ought_v not_o to_o stain_v our_o holy_a and_o catholic_a religion_n we_o religion_n thus_o we_o also_o answer_v the_o objection_n that_o you_o make_v against_o our_o religion_n from_o the_o lewd_a life_n that_o you_o see_v in_o some_o which_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o our_o profession_n it_o be_v a_o good_a defence_n for_o you_o you_o think_v why_o shall_v you_o not_o grant_v ●_o then_o so_o to_o be_v to_o we_o for_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o ill_a fruit_n come_v of_o ourselves_o and_o not_o of_o our_o religion_n the_o which_o do_v defend_v we_o from_o do_v that_o we_o do_v i_o mean_v to_o swear_v to_o blaspheme_v to_o commit_v adultery_n to_o do_v any_o man_n wrong_v or_o to_o offend_v god_n any_o way_n he_o that_o do_v desire_n then_o by_o the_o fruit_n to_o know_v whither_o the_o tree_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v good_a he_o ought_v not_o to_o bend_v his_o eye_n to_o look_v upon_o the_o rot_a fruit_n as_o if_o that_o be_v sufficient_a to_o disprove_v the_o goodness_n of_o the_o tree_n but_o let_v he_o look_v upon_o the_o good_a fruit_n you_o fruit_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o you_o far_o overshoot_v your_o se_fw-mi fe_o in_o your_o reckon_n when_o you_o compare_v indeed_o their_o religion_n exp_v ess_v in_o their_o writing_n with_o you_o such_o be_v all_o the_o doctor_n aswell_o of_o the_o greek_a as_o latin_a church_n so_o many_o good_a emperor_n and_o virtuous_a king_n prince_n duke_n and_o earl_n which_o have_v reign_v in_o france_n spain_n germany_n and_o england_n and_o over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o have_v die_v in_o the_o faith_n leave_v their_o work_n to_o bear_v witness_n of_o their_o good_a fruit_n also_o fruit_n many_o king_n qu●enes_n noble_n and_o other_o of_o our_o religion_n have_v do_v these_o thing_n also_o the_o which_o have_v build_v so_o many_o fair_a hospital_n to_o help_v &_o relieve_v the_o poor_a so_o many_o goodly_a college_n to_o entertain_v fatherless_a child_n at_o their_o book_n so_o many_o foundation_n and_o work_n for_o the_o common_a wealth_n and_o that_o have_v build_v so_o many_o sumptuous_a overthrow_n sumptuous_a the_o first_o pull_v of_o they_o dow●e_v here_o in_o england_n come_v even_o from_o your_o cardinal_n and_o great_a bishop_n under_o the_o pretence_n therewith_o to_o find_v college_n and_o so_o have_v give_v the_o king_n a_o example_n whe●_n he_o be_v dispose_v to_o follow_v it_o they_o easy_o consent_v indeed_o the_o abomination_n therein_o commit_v be_v their_o overthrow_n abbey_v and_o house_n of_o religion_n the_o which_o you_o with_o your_o godly_a zeal_n have_v not_o only_o rob_v and_o spoil_v but_o that_o that_o be_v more_o odious_a you_o have_v pull_v they_o clean_o down_o to_o deface_v the_o memory_n of_o our_o ancestor_n &_o to_o acquit_v all_o these_o which_o be_v notable_a monument_n you_o brag_v of_o the_o good_a deed_n that_o your_o good_a christian_n do_v which_o be_v much_o like_a unto_o the_o gain_n of_o those_o that_o use_v to_o cog_v at_o dise_z for_o although_o they_o win_v much_o it_o be_v never_o see_v or_o like_o the_o jew_n which_o to_o colour_v their_o horrible_a cruelty_n in_o put_v our_o saviour_n unjust_o to_o death_n they_o go_v &_o buy_v with_o the_o money_n that_o they_o give_v to_o judas_n a_o field_n to_o bury_v the_o dead_a here_o dead_a as_o deep_a and_o ground_a papist_n be_v liquorish_a of_o abbey_n land_n as_o any_o other_o and_o as_o greedy_o and_o secure_o they_o enjoy_v they_o still_o among_o us._n cardinal_n woolsey_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n your_o great_a martyr_n first_o begin_v that_o course_n here_o and_o so_o you_o have_v rob_v &_o spoil_v from_o the_o religious_a house_n and_o abbey_v more_o than_o you_o be_v able_a to_o restore_v you_o think_v to_o acquit_v it_o all_o with_o give_v a_o little_a to_o the_o poor_a no_o no_o these_o devise_n be_v but_o vain_a if_o by_o the_o fruit_n the_o tree_n be_v know_v as_o christ_n say_v let_v they_o that_o have_v any_o judgement_n look_v upon_o the_o fruit_n of_o our_o tree_n &_o then_o judge_v whither_o they_o be_v good_a or_o no._n the_o xxxiiii_o chapter_n partly_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n but_o more_o plain_o in_o this_o you_o show_v that_o you_o understand_v by_o the_o tree_n that_o christ_n speak_v of_o good_a religion_n and_o bad_a but_o if_o you_o view_v the_o place_n you_o will_v at_o least_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o shall_v rather_o thereby_o understand_v the_o person_n of_o man_n effectual_o call_v as_o i_o have_v say_v or_o not_o call_v at_o all_o or_o at_o least_o yet_o uneffectual_o call_v &_o that_o sound_a religion_n be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a fruit_n that_o he_o mean_v shall_v grow_v upon_o the_o former_a to_o discern_v he_o from_o the_o late_a for_o his_o scope_n be_v not_o there_o to_o teach_v we_o how_o to_o discern_v religion_n but_o how_o to_o discern_v the_o child_n of_o god_n from_o the_o child_n of_o sathan_n and_o thus_o it_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o proverb_n will_v not_o prove_v hard_o at_o all_o to_o we_o to_o digest_v but_o to_o you_o who_o what_o show_v soever_o you_o can_v make_v with_o
they_o leave_v in_o writtng_a by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n to_o confute_v such_o heretic_n as_o you_o be_v the_o xxxvii_o chapter_n at_o last_o it_o seem_v by_o your_o pain_n take_v in_o this_o chapter_n you_o be_v think_v yourself_o that_o forasmuch_o as_o hitherto_o only_o in_o bare_a and_o naked_a word_n you_o have_v vaunt_a and_o brag_v your_o religion_n to_o be_v the_o ancient_a religion_n that_o it_o be_v needful_a for_o you_o even_o for_o shame_n before_o you_o make_v a_o full_a end_n of_o your_o book_n to_o yield_v we_o some_o reason_n and_o ground_n or_o at_o least_o some_o show_n &_o colour_n of_o your_o so_o lewd_a and_o bold_a boast_n and_o therefore_o here_o now_o at_o last_o to_o that_o end_n you_o have_v muster_v the_o bare_a name_n of_o a_o few_o ancient_a father_n very_o provident_o leave_v your_o reader_n to_o the_o examine_n of_o your_o quotation_n among_o who_o not_o one_o of_o a_o hundred_o you_o know_v either_o for_o lack_v of_o skill_n or_o will_n leisure_n or_o book_n can_v and_o will_v turn_v to_o the_o place_n in_o the_o author_n themselves_o you_o think_v belike_o your_o credit_n to_o be_v such_o that_o they_o must_v needs_o believe_v that_o you_o cite_v they_o true_o and_o faithful_o and_o that_o because_o you_o so_o roundly_o have_v huddle_v they_o together_o that_o therefore_o also_o out_o of_o all_o question_n they_o speak_v and_o wroteful_o for_o you_o in_o the_o point_v you_o allege_v they_o for_o what_o small_a cause_n there_o be_v either_o for_o you_o to_o look_v thus_o to_o be_v trust_v or_o for_o any_o to_o yield_v you_o such_o credit_n herein_o we_o shall_v see_v anon_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o examine_n of_o your_o quotation_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n what_o mean_v you_o by_o this_o thus_o only_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o to_o countenance_v these_o 4_o points_z your_o ceremony_n in_o baptism_n confession_n before_o the_o sacrament_n prayer_n to_o the_o saint_n depart_v and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v these_o the_o great_a matter_n of_o your_o religion_n in_o question_n or_o do_v it_o especial_o depend_v upon_o these_o 4_o and_o the_o countenance_v of_o these_o or_o be_v your_o provision_n ready_a for_o no_o more_o that_o but_o once_o in_o all_o your_o book_n you_o seem_v to_o set_v down_o the_o authority_n whereupon_o you_o ground_n your_o religion_n you_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o go_v no_o further_o then_o to_o these_o 4_o point_n indeed_o in_o your_o next_o chapter_n you_o excuse_v yourself_o and_o say_v that_o you_o will_v have_v go_v likewise_o on_o to_o confirm_v the_o rest_n but_o for_o be_v tedious_a to_o your_o reader_n true_o he_o be_v much_o behold_v to_o you_o for_o your_o discreet_a kindness_n towards_o he_o that_o have_v not_o spare_v to_o be_v tedious_a unto_o he_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o book_n in_o trouble_v of_o he_o with_o such_o a_o number_n of_o proud_a brag_n of_o the_o antiquity_n and_o catholikenes_n of_o all_o your_o religion_n as_o you_o have_v and_o with_o many_o needle_n and_o frivolous_a long_a discourse_n beside_o and_o now_o when_o you_o come_v to_o the_o point_n indeed_o which_o of_o all_o other_o be_v most_o material_a and_o wherein_o both_o for_o his_o satisfaction_n and_o your_o own_o credit_n it_o stand_v you_o upon_o most_o to_o enlarge_v yourself_o than_o thus_o to_o shift_v he_o of_o with_o as_o good_a as_o nothing_o bear_v he_o yet_o in_o hand_n that_o but_o for_o his_o ease_n you_o both_o can_v and_o will_v have_v say_v enough_o this_o be_v a_o common_a trick_n among_o you_o thus_o to_o cozen_v and_o abuse_v your_o simple_a reader_n to_o weary_v they_o with_o thing_n needle_n and_o then_o to_o slip_v over_o with_o some_o such_o shift_n as_o this_o matter_n most_o needful_a well_o concern_v that_o which_o either_o you_o have_v say_v here_o for_o these_o 4_o points_z or_o that_o which_o after_o you_o pretend_v if_o you_o have_v listen_v you_o can_v have_v easy_o say_v for_o the_o rest_n this_o i_o will_v have_v the_o reader_n diligent_o to_o note_n and_o mark_n that_o but_o for_o two_o place_n vain_o allege_v to_o prove_v your_o confession_n that_o you_o neither_o have_v allege_v any_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n at_o all_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o these_o nor_o yet_o that_o you_o so_o much_o as_o say_v after_o you_o can_v or_o will_v for_o the_o rest_n which_o argue_v that_o even_a in_o your_o own_o conscience_n the_o best_a ground_n and_o countenance_n that_o your_o popish_a religion_n have_v either_o in_o these_o point_n or_o in_o the_o rest_n be_v but_o from_o earth_n and_o not_o from_o heaven_n from_o man_n and_o not_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o if_o you_o have_v be_v able_a with_o any_o good_a colour_n to_o have_v countenance_v either_o these_o point_n or_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n out_o of_o god_n own_o book_n and_o write_v word_n the_o reader_n may_v think_v that_o neither_o your_o zeal_n to_o your_o religion_n nor_o yet_o your_o boast_a spirit_n which_o hitherto_o have_v show_v itself_o overflow_a in_o you_o either_o will_v or_o can_v have_v suffer_v you_o thus_o much_o to_o the_o prejudice_n your_o whole_a cause_n clean_o to_o have_v forget_v so_o much_o as_o once_o to_o go_v about_o it_o but_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n see_v it_o be_v confess_v by_o your_o better_n not_o only_o that_o this_o but_o the_o most_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o point_n of_o your_o religion_n which_o we_o strive_v with_o you_o for_o be_v ground_v but_o upon_o tradition_n as_o i_o have_v show_v out_o of_o soto_n against_o brentius_n canisius_n five_o chapter_n of_o his_o catechism_n and_o lyndans_fw-la 100_o chapter_n of_o the_o five_o book_n of_o his_o panoply_n before_o you_o be_v the_o honest_a man_n and_z the_o more_z a_o great_a deal_n to_o be_v like_v for_o your_o thus_o secret_o confess_v the_o same_o with_o they_o now_o yet_o by_o this_o the_o reader_n may_v plain_o understand_v what_o have_v indeed_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o in_o all_o your_o book_n hitherto_o you_o have_v labour_v so_o much_o as_o you_o have_v to_o grace_v and_o countenance_n tradition_n and_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o doctor_n and_o withal_o have_v spend_v so_o much_o time_n in_o diswade_v the_o appeal_n to_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o end_n of_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o us._n you_o be_v wise_a enough_o it_o seem_v to_o see_v where_o your_o strength_n lay_v and_o from_o whence_o will_v rise_v your_o bane_n and_o therefore_o who_o can_v blame_v you_o for_o lean_v as_o you_o do_v altogether_o to_o the_o one_o and_o shun_v the_o other_o but_o then_o in_o reason_n yet_o you_o shall_v call_v your_o religion_n no_o more_o divinity_n but_o humanity_n no_o more_o theology_n but_o patrologie_n and_o plain_o confess_v indeed_o from_o whence_o you_o have_v all_o your_o fig_n leave_v rag_n and_o clout_n to_o cover_v your_o shame_n and_o nakedness_n true_o these_o you_o have_v whatsoever_o in_o this_o respect_n you_o pretend_v not_o from_o the_o right_n and_o sound_a apostolic_a tradition_n which_o always_o be_v either_o express_v in_o scripture_n or_o at_o least_o consonant_a unto_o it_o nor_o from_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n right_o understand_v and_o when_o they_o teach_v as_o it_o be_v of_o themselves_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v their_o duty_n with_o sound_a warrant_n from_o the_o scripture_n as_o i_o have_v sundry_a time_n show_v already_o but_o only_a from_o forge_a or_o corrupt_a tradition_n and_o from_o the_o father_n either_o misunderstand_v or_o err_v as_o man_n so_o that_o unwriten_a verity_n or_o rather_o forgery_n sentence_n of_o father_n mistake_v or_o their_o very_a error_n whereof_o they_o will_v have_v be_v ashamed_a if_o they_o have_v have_v the_o mean_n to_o help_v they_o to_o see_v they_o that_o you_o have_v be_v the_o ground_n pillar_n and_o beauty_n of_o your_o church_n and_o religion_n and_o this_o we_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o justify_v against_o you_o before_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o sound_n and_o invincible_a proof_n out_o of_o the_o un_fw-fr doubt_a word_n of_o god_n interpret_v according_o to_o the_o same_o rule_n of_o interpret_n it_o that_o the_o holy_a and_o ancient_a father_n themselves_o have_v follow_v in_o confute_v all_o heretic_n in_o their_o time_n by_o and_o which_o they_o have_v likewise_o commend_v to_o other_o always_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o out_o of_o the_o undoubted_a writing_n of_o the_o ancient_a and_o best_a father_n themselves_o we_o be_v therefore_o very_o well_o content_a to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o church_n and_o religion_n which_o we_o be_v sure_o we_o be_v able_a thus_o to_o justify_v and_o we_o envy_v not_o you_o but_o rather_o hearty_o lament_v and_o pity_v you_o that_o you_o have_v no_o better_a ground_n than_o it_o have_v but_o to_o
aside_o of_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o the_o banish_n of_o all_o temptation_n because_o they_o die_v not_o but_o live_v for_o ever_o which_o seem_v to_o die_v and_o therefore_o say_v he_o we_o keep_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o our_o parent_n and_o friend_n which_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n as_o rejoice_v for_o their_o rest_n so_o beg_v for_o ourselves_o consummation_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o to_o this_o end_n to_o celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o such_o so_o depart_v we_o call_v the_o poor_a together_o and_o satisfy_v they_o with_o victual_n in_o token_n of_o our_o joy_n &_o thankfulness_n for_o their_o quietness_n &_o rest_n he_o that_o get_v not_o forgiveness_n of_o his_o sin_n here_o shall_v not_o be_v there_o and_o therefore_o say_v david_n forgive_v i_o that_o i_o may_v be_v refresh_v before_o i_o go_v hence_o and_o be_v no_o more_o see_v say_v ambrofe_n de_fw-fr hono_fw-la mortis_fw-la cap._n 2._o and_o cyprian_a against_o demetrian_a say_v most_o flat_o when_o one_o be_v go_v hence_o there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o repentance_n no_o effect_n of_o satisfaction_n &_o de_fw-la mortalitate_fw-la again_o he_o say_v what_o manner_n of_o one_o god_n find_v thou_o when_o he_o call_v thou_o even_o such_o a_o one_o also_o will_v he_o judge_v thou_o chrysostome_n be_v as_o flat_a as_o ambrose_n in_o these_o point_n for_o upon_o the_o 4._o of_o the_o hebrew_n hom_n 4._o he_o say_v that_o if_o we_o come_v to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n now_o we_o shall_v have_v grace_n &_o mercy_n now_o be_v the_o time_n of_o gift_n after_o of_o judgement_n and_o in_o his_o sermon_n de_fw-fr eucharistiâ_fw-la in_o eucaen_fw-la there_o be_v say_v he_o after_o this_o life_n end_v no_o negotiation_n this_o be_v the_o time_n of_o suffering_n or_o strive_v that_o of_o crown_n this_o of_o labour_n that_o of_o ease_n this_o of_o sorrow_n that_o of_o reward_n &_o therefore_o in_o the_o 7._o hom_o upon_o the_o 2._o of_o the_o hebrew_n show_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o solemnity_n use_v at_o burial_n he_o say_v that_o the_o reason_n thereof_o be_v that_o we_o may_v glorify_v god_n &_o give_v he_o thank_n that_o have_v crown_v &_o take_v to_o himself_o our_o brother_n depart_v &_o free_v he_o from_o his_o labour_n &_o servitude_n be_v not_o our_o psalm_n &_o hymn_n for_o this_o &_o our_o sing_n omne_fw-la ista_fw-la gaudentium_fw-la sunt_fw-la all_o these_o say_v he_o be_v the_o do_n of_o man_n that_o rejoice_v &_o de_fw-fr beato_fw-la philogonio_fw-la most_o confident_o he_o write_v ego_fw-la fide_fw-la iubeo_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v i_o do_v pawn_v my_o credit_n if_o any_o depart_n from_o his_o sin_n with_o his_o whole_a heart_n &_o true_o and_o unfeigned_o promise_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o will_v return_v no_o more_o unto_o they_o that_o god_n will_v require_v nothing_o more_o of_o he_o to_o satisfaction_n but_o to_o come_v to_o augustin_n he_o in_o his_o 80._o epistle_n to_o hesichius_n say_v in_o what_o state_n soever_o thy_o last_o day_n find_v thou_o in_o the_o same_o will_v the_o last_o day_n of_o the_o world_n come_v upon_o thou_o for_o what_o manner_n of_o one_o every_o man_n die_v such_o a_o one_o than_o he_o shall_v be_v judge_v and_o upon_o the_o 25._o psa_fw-la he_o plain_o wish_v that_o only_o the_o price_n of_o the_o lord_n blood_n may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o he_o for_o his_o perfect_a freedom_n and_o deliverance_n herein_o we_o be_v sure_o they_o have_v the_o scripture_n full_a of_o their_o side_n for_o first_o they_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n do_v cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n 1._o john_n 1._o and_o that_o he_o so_o bear_v our_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o body_n upon_o the_o tree_n that_o by_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v 1._o pe._n 2._o second_o they_o teach_v we_o that_o bless_v be_v they_o that_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o even_o thenceforth_o immediate_o they_o rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o their_o work_n follow_v they_o apo._n 14._o and_o three_o likewise_o direct_o they_o affirm_v that_o a_o ill_a man_n once_o dead_a there_o be_v no_o more_o hope_n for_o he_o pro._n 11._o and_o that_o therefore_o we_o must_v have_v oil_n in_o our_o lamp_n in_o a_o readiness_n when_o the_o bridegroom_n call_v we_o or_o else_o we_o shall_v be_v shut_v out_o for_o ever_o what_o stir_n soever_o we_o make_v to_o provide_v oil_n after_o mat._n 25._o and_o last_o in_o these_o upon_o these_o ground_n all_o man_n be_v urge_v while_o the_o day_n last_v while_o the_o acceptable_a time_n or_o day_n of_o salvation_n endure_v while_o the_o lord_n be_v nigh_o and_o may_v be_v find_v &_o while_o they_o have_v time_n to_o work_v to_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n to_o seek_v the_o lord_n and_o to_o do_v good_a unto_o all_o man_n as_o it_o be_v well_o enough_o know_v and_o therefore_o if_o these_o father_n as_o man_n at_o any_o time_n or_o any_o other_o either_o by_o their_o example_n or_o writing_n have_v in_o any_o point_n never_o so_o little_a in_o any_o kind_n of_o sort_n cross_v themselves_o &_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n in_o any_o of_o these_o point_n either_o in_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a or_o in_o lay_v any_o ground_n or_o occasion_n thereof_o we_o may_v bold_o leave_v they_o &_o choose_v rather_o to_o cleave_v unto_o they_o in_o these_o these_o thing_n thus_o premise_v let_v we_o now_o proceed_v to_o the_o particular_a examine_v of_o john_n de_fw-fr albine_n quotation_n for_o their_o kind_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_z his_o first_o man_n be_v tert._n for_o high_a he_o can_v go_v to_o fetch_v any_o show_n of_o colour_n for_o this_o matter_n unless_o he_o will_v run_v to_o apocrypha_fw-la writing_n to_o philosopher_n &_o poet_n to_o heretic_n or_o to_o the_o notorious_o know_v counterfeit_a writing_n of_o clement_n &_o such_o like_a and_o out_o of_o this_o tertullian_n he_o allege_v two_o place_n the_o first_o out_o of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr monogamiâ_n &_o the_o other_o out_o of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr coronâ_fw-la militis_fw-la both_o which_o be_v write_v by_o he_o after_o he_o becane_a a_o montanist_n as_o beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la in_o his_o argument_n of_o those_o two_o book_n be_v enforce_v to_o confess_v for_o in_o the_o late_a he_o mention_v the_o new_a prophecy_n thereby_o understanding_n montanus_n fancy_n &_o in_o the_o other_o he_o most_o plain_o conden_v second_v marriage_n quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n paul_n as_o hierom_n have_v true_o note_v upon_o titus_n and_o therefore_o both_o there_o he_o condemn_v that_o book_n as_o a_o heretical_a book_n and_o also_o in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n as_o a_o book_n write_v against_o the_o church_n albine_v therefore_o have_v aptly_o than_o he_o be_v aware_a of_o seek_v out_o a_o heretic_n in_o his_o heretical_a write_n to_o be_v the_o first_o man_n to_o speak_v for_o the_o patronise_a of_o this_o popish_a heresy_n of_o he_o but_o perhaps_o he_o will_v say_v that_o he_o learn_v not_o of_o heretic_n to_o speak_v for_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a whereunto_o i_o reply_v that_o if_o ever_o he_o write_v any_o thing_n therein_o to_o serve_v your_o turn_n he_o learn_v it_o of_o no_o better_a schoolmaster_n then_o of_o such_o or_o of_o philosopher_n their_o ordinary_a teacher_n for_o as_o he_o himself_o write_v the_o prescript_n adversus_fw-la haereticos_fw-la as_o the_o original_n of_o all_o truth_n be_v doctrine_n receive_v by_o the_o apostle_n from_o christ_n so_o the_o spring_n of_o all_o error_n have_v be_v from_o the_o devil_n by_o philosopher_n and_o touch_v this_o particular_a in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr animâ_fw-la he_o write_v that_o the_o philosopher_n that_o hold_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o pythagoras_n empedocles_n and_o plato_n assign_v for_o soul_n depart_v heaven_n hell_n and_o a_o third_o purify_n place_n and_o in_o that_o book_n he_o show_v that_o montanus_n his_o master_n hold_v that_o the_o patriarch_n before_o christ_n come_n be_v in_o hell_n that_o abraham_n bosom_n be_v in_o hell_n or_o in_o the_o low_a part_n that_o only_o perfect_a man_n and_o martyr_n go_v to_o heaven_n straight_o and_o that_o all_o small_a offence_n must_v be_v punish_v after_o this_o life_n to_o the_o uttermost_a farthing_n his_o paraclet_n so_o expound_v that_o of_o mat._n ca._n the_o inf_n &_o ult_v and_o in_o that_o book_n also_o he_o tell_v of_o a_o woman_n lie_v to_o be_v bury_v that_o at_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o priest_n over_o she_o lift_v up_o her_o hand_n etc._n etc._n whereby_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o heretic_n montanus_n &_o his_o paraclet_n may_v be_v very_o fit_a schoolmaster_n to_o teach_v he_o a_o great_a part_n of_o your_o doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n further_o that_o you_o may_v see_v not_o only_o by_o his_o own_o
testimony_n that_o he_o may_v have_v such_o school_n master_n as_o i_o have_v say_v to_o teach_v he_o herein_o somewhat_o to_o favour_v you_o &_o to_o speak_v of_o your_o side_n irenaeus_n in_o his_o first_o book_n &_o 24._o chapter_n testify_v of_o the_o heretic_n carpocrates_n that_o he_o be_v a_o great_a admirer_n of_o philosophy_n insomuch_o that_o to_o the_o image_n he_o make_v of_o christ_n and_o of_o some_o of_o his_o apostle_n he_o join_v the_o image_n of_o pythagoras_n plato_n and_o aristotle_n of_o who_o he_o learn_v to_o imagine_v that_o there_o be_v a_o purify_n place_n after_o this_o life_n and_o so_o to_o prove_v purgatory_n out_o of_o that_o place_n of_o matthew_n as_o you_o hear_v before_o montanus_n paraclet_n do_v and_o the_o heretic_n heracleones_n as_o augustine_n write_v of_o they_o use_v over_o their_o dead_a oil_n balm_n water_n and_o invocation_n in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n hereunto_o join_v you_o virgil_n 6_o book_n of_o his_o aeneidos_n &_o lie_v vision_n &_o you_o have_v the_o right_a schoolmaster_n that_o have_v teach_v you_o &_o all_o that_o favour_n you_o in_o this_o point_n but_o concern_v the_o place_n in_o tertullian_n which_o you_o quote_v we_o need_v not_o thus_o answer_v you_o for_o they_o be_v not_o so_o pregnant_a for_o you_o as_o you_o imagine_v for_o the_o word_n you_o ground_n on_o in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v these_o speak_v by_o he_o to_o the_o wife_n to_o teach_v she_o how_o in_o this_o point_n to_o behave_v herself_o towards_o her_o dead_a husband_n &_o pro_fw-la animâ_fw-la eius_fw-la oret_fw-la &_o refrigerium_fw-la interim_n adpostulet_fw-la ei_fw-la &_o in_o primâ_fw-la resurrectione_n consortium_fw-la &_o offerat_fw-la annuis_fw-la diebus_fw-la dormitionis_fw-la eius_fw-la that_o be_v let_v she_o pray_v for_o his_o soul_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n desire_v refresh_v for_o he_o and_o fellowship_n in_o the_o first_o resurrection_n and_o let_v she_o offer_v always_o when_o the_o year_n day_n come_v for_o his_o sleep_a which_o be_v the_o word_n as_o beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la confess_v that_o he_o have_v so_o set_v down_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o find_v it_o far_o otherwise_o in_o all_o example_n before_o again_o not_o only_o this_o obscurity_n of_o tertullians_n word_n and_o the_o uncertainty_n what_o they_o be_v disable_v this_o place_n from_o be_v of_o any_o force_n for_o you_o to_o ground_n upon_o but_o also_o unless_o you_o must_v have_v it_o grant_v that_o every_o woman_n husband_n to_o who_o he_o give_v this_o counsel_n be_v in_o purgatory_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n at_o all_o in_o his_o word_n in_o that_o book_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a whereby_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o such_o as_o be_v go_v before_o in_o peace_n to_o the_o lord_n his_o word_n if_o they_o be_v these_o prove_v not_o your_o pray_v to_o relieve_v soul_n there_o and_o the_o offering_n that_o he_o last_o speak_v of_o be_v either_o the_o offering_n of_o thanks_n to_o god_n for_o his_o quiet_a rest_n and_o sleep_v or_o a_o offering_n or_o give_v of_o alm_n to_o the_o poor_a in_o token_n of_o joy_n for_o the_o same_o and_o to_o provoke_v they_o to_o be_v thankful_a therefore_o also_o as_o you_o hear_v i_o before_o note_n the_o fashion_n be_v when_o the_o tract_n of_o job_n father_v upon_o origen_n be_v write_v out_o of_o the_o three_o tract_n of_o the_o same_o and_o not_o as_o you_o will_v have_v it_o take_v a_o offering_n of_o your_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n in_o your_o mass_n for_o his_o sin_n for_o he_o say_v for_o his_o fall_v a_o sleep_n and_o not_o for_o his_o sin_n and_o he_o will_v the_o woman_n to_o offer_v and_o not_o that_o she_o shall_v get_v the_o priest_n to_o do_v it_o and_o in_o answer_v of_o this_o place_n your_o other_o be_v also_o answer_v for_o there_o only_o he_o say_v oblationes_fw-la pro_fw-la defunctis_fw-la pro_fw-la natalitiis_fw-la annuâ_fw-la die_fw-la facimus_fw-la that_o be_v we_o offer_v oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a for_o their_o birth_n day_n every_o year_n day_n for_o in_o that_o he_o express_o say_v pro_fw-la natalitiis_fw-la for_o their_o birth_n day_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o can_v nor_o may_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o any_o other_o oblation_n but_o of_o thankfulness_n and_o rejoice_v but_o this_o offering_n for_o their_o birth_n day_n beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la upon_o this_o place_n in_o his_o note_n say_v be_v heathenish_a and_o afterward_o be_v condemn_v and_o abolish_v by_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o other_o and_o yet_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o these_o word_n of_o tertullian_n enforce_v in_o this_o place_n he_o speak_v of_o no_o other_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a but_o for_o their_o birth_n day_n so_o that_o long_o ago_o the_o date_n and_o credit_n of_o this_o testimony_n and_o fashion_n be_v abrogate_a and_o last_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v forget_v that_o he_o himself_o within_o few_o line_n after_o these_o word_n speak_v of_o this_o fashion_n &_o of_o sundry_a other_o that_o there_o also_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o plain_o confess_v that_o these_o thing_n have_v no_o ground_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o only_o by_o tradition_n that_o which_o other_o of_o your_o fellow_n allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n out_o of_o tertullian_n in_o his_o exhortation_n to_o charity_n may_v receive_v the_o same_o answer_n with_o these_o for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o book_n also_o be_v write_v in_o his_o montanisme_n for_o there_o he_o be_v against_o second_o marriage_n as_o in_o the_o first_o and_o so_o against_o paul_n roman_n 7._o 1._o cor._n 7._o and_o with_o montanus_n and_o the_o word_n be_v no_o more_o pregnant_a to_o ground_n prayer_n to_o relieve_v soul_n in_o purgatory_n than_o the_o former_a be_v now_o next_o be_v cyprian_a who_o be_v a_o bishop_n in_o that_o city_n wherein_o sometime_o tertullian_n have_v live_v in_o he_o for_o your_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a you_o will_v have_v we_o read_v his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la plebem_fw-la furnensem_fw-la in_o his_o first_o book_n i_o be_o sure_a you_o mean_v the_o nine_o epistle_n of_o that_o book_n write_v as_o it_o appear_v there_o ad_fw-la plebem_fw-la furnilanorum_fw-la though_o either_o you_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o to_o put_v your_o reader_n to_o a_o little_a more_o pain_n to_o seek_v it_o out_o tell_v we_o so_o much_o but_o have_v find_v it_o and_o read_v it_o howsoever_o you_o be_v persuade_v of_o it_o we_o find_v little_a or_o nothing_o there_o that_o can_v do_v you_o any_o good_a for_o only_o there_o of_o a_o decree_n make_v in_o some_o african_a synod_n before_o his_o time_n he_o ground_v his_o persuasion_n to_o that_o people_n forasmuch_o as_o one_o victor_n have_v contrary_a to_o that_o decree_n make_v one_o heminius_n faustinus_n minister_n executor_n of_o his_o will_n and_o testament_n therefore_o to_o stay_v other_o from_o dare_v any_o more_o so_o to_o violate_v that_o decree_n to_o the_o call_n away_o the_o minister_n from_o attendance_n of_o their_o ministry_n that_o they_o shall_v execute_v that_o decree_n against_o that_o their_o brother_n victor_n depart_v which_o be_v that_o for_o this_o cause_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o offering_n for_o he_o nor_o sacrifice_n for_o his_o fall_v a_o sleep_n for_o say_v he_o he_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v name_v in_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o priest_n that_o will_v so_o call_v away_o the_o minister_n or_o priest_n from_o the_o altar_n &_o therefore_o see_v this_o be_v victor_n fault_n let_v there_o be_v no_o oblation_n with_o you_o for_o his_o sleep_v nor_o in_o his_o name_n any_o deprecation_n frequent_v in_o the_o church_n do_v you_o think_v in_o good_a earnest_n master_n albine_n that_o if_o cyprian_a have_v think_v that_o his_o brother_n victor_n soul_n have_v be_v in_o such_o pain_n in_o purgatory_n as_o you_o teach_v be_v there_o and_o that_o these_o be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n to_o ease_v soul_n there_o that_o for_o so_o small_a a_o matter_n as_o this_o the_o break_n of_o this_o positive_a law_n which_o with_o you_o be_v usual_o break_v if_o in_o your_o sense_n these_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o oblation_n sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o ease_n of_o the_o party_n so_o depart_v from_o under_o the_o punishment_n upon_o he_o for_o his_o sin_n that_o cyprian_a either_o might_n lawful_o can_v without_o too_o too_o much_o cruelty_n or_o will_v so_o without_o all_o mercy_n and_o charity_n persuade_v to_o deprive_v a_o brother_n depart_v of_o these_o thing_n you_o can_v be_v so_o without_o reason_n as_o once_o to_o think_v so_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o canon_n against_o victor_n be_v but_o only_o a_o note_n of_o some_o disgrace_n &_o ignominy_n lay_v upon_o he_o the_o better_a to_o make_v other_o after_o to_o regard_v that_o canon_n and_o not_o any_o deny_v of_o his_o soul_n any_o thing_n so_o necessary_a
hence_o man_n overgrowen_v and_o oppress_v with_o thorn_n sure_o such_o as_o these_o go_v straight_o to_o hell_n or_o else_o none_o in_o the_o other_o two_o place_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v he_o both_o mention_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o in_o some_o sort_n allow_v thereof_o and_o hold_v thereby_o good_a to_o come_v to_o the_o dead_a the_o place_n be_v in_o his_o enchiridion_n to_o laurence_n cap._n 110._o and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr curâ_fw-la agendâ_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la but_o both_o in_o these_o same_o place_n and_o else_o very_o often_o in_o his_o work_n as_o namely_o in_o the_o 1_o 4._o and_o 18._o chapter_n of_o the_o late_a book_n in_o his_o 23._o sermon_n de_fw-la verbis_fw-la apostoli_fw-la in_o his_o 21_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n cap._n 13._o and_o 24._o and_o to_o dulcitius_n quaest_n 2_o it_o appear_v that_o herein_o and_o hereabout_o in_o his_o time_n there_o be_v great_a question_n some_o as_o the_o common_a people_n stretch_v the_o use_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a even_o to_o the_o discharge_n of_o the_o worst_a sort_n and_o some_o altogether_o disallow_v any_o kind_n of_o good_a to_o come_v thereby_o whereupon_o somewhat_o too_o much_o carry_v with_o a_o desire_n to_o appease_v the_o common_a people_n he_o choose_v the_o mean_a betwixt_o 2_o extremity_n which_o he_o think_v in_o this_o case_n the_o safe_a and_o so_o that_o he_o seem_v to_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v profitable_a for_o a_o mean_a sort_n neither_o perfect_o good_a nor_o extreme_a bad_a and_o that_o in_o this_o question_n of_o the_o determine_v the_o availablenes_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a he_o be_v both_o great_o carry_v by_o the_o sway_n of_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o multitude_n and_o great_o perplex_v to_o find_v out_o of_o what_o sin_n man_n may_v be_v ease_v thereby_o he_o himself_o most_o plain_o show_v de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 21._o c._n 24._o &_o 27._o in_o the_o first_o hereof_o dispute_v such_o question_n thereabouts_o as_o he_o do_v &_o in_o the_o other_o confess_v that_o though_o he_o have_v search_v much_o for_o that_o matter_n yet_o he_o can_v not_o be_v satisfy_v therein_o and_o who_o so_o read_v his_o book_n de_fw-fr curâ_fw-la agendâ_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la he_o shall_v find_v it_o wonderful_a full_a of_o doubt_n and_o question_n about_o this_o matter_n and_o before_o i_o have_v show_v how_o variable_a &_o unconstant_a he_o be_v for_o the_o purge_a fire_n after_o this_o life_n what_o a_o weak_a and_o totter_a foundation_n or_o ground_n then_o be_v saint_n augustine_n authority_n in_o this_o case_n to_o build_v upon_o but_o if_o he_o have_v be_v never_o so_o confident_a constant_a and_o resolute_a herein_o see_v he_o confess_v as_o he_o do_v that_o he_o have_v no_o warrant_n for_o it_o in_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o maccabee_n &_o that_o he_o lay_v the_o custme_n of_o pray_v &_o offer_v for_o the_o dead_a as_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o his_o opinion_n in_o this_o point_n by_o his_o own_o leave_n and_o rule_n we_o may_v lawful_o without_o offer_v he_o any_o wrong_n dissent_v from_o he_o herein_o as_o i_o have_v show_v sundry_a time_n before_o for_o in_o his_o 112_o epistle_n most_o plain_o and_o honest_o he_o say_v follow_v not_o so_o my_o authority_n that_o therefore_o thou_o shall_v think_v thyself_o of_o necessity_n bind_v to_o believe_v it_o because_o i_o have_v say_v it_o and_o de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cap._n 10._o we_o must_v not_o say_v he_o agree_v to_o catholic_a bishop_n if_o peradventure_o they_o be_v deceive_v or_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n the_o reason_n be_v that_o as_o he_o say_v contra_fw-la faustum_n l._n 11._o cap._n 5._o such_o man_n writing_n be_v to_o be_v read_v not_o with_o necessity_n of_o believe_v but_o with_o liberty_n of_o judge_v for_o only_o to_o the_o scripture_n without_o gainsay_v say_v he_o i_o owe_v my_o consent_n epist_n 19_o ad_fw-la hieronimum_fw-la this_o leave_n and_o liberty_n you_o take_v in_o refuse_v either_o he_o or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o father_n in_o a_o number_n of_o point_n where_o you_o like_v they_o not_o and_z why_o shall_v not_o we_o then_o have_v leave_v to_o do_v likewise_o in_o this_o be_v able_a as_o we_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o herein_o he_o go_v further_o then_o either_o he_o have_v any_o warrant_n for_o out_o of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o out_o of_o any_o unforged_a and_o uncounterfeited_a precedent_n for_o three_o hundred_o year_n at_o the_o least_o of_o any_o ancient_a father_n but_o when_o you_o have_v make_v the_o most_o of_o his_o speech_n and_o writing_n you_o can_v you_o can_v never_o without_o do_v of_o he_o most_o gross_a injury_n make_v he_o to_o allow_v of_o your_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_v and_o offer_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n unto_o god_n the_o father_n as_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a for_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la ad_fw-la petrum_fw-la diaconum_fw-la cap._n 10._o most_o confident_o he_o have_v teach_v bid_v we_o to_o hold_v it_o most_o steadfast_o and_o nothing_o doubt_v thereof_o but_o that_o christ_n offer_v that_o sacrifice_n to_o his_o father_n himself_o and_o that_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n cease_v not_o to_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o faith_n &_o charity_n which_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n and_o commemoration_n of_o the_o other_o only_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n &_o not_o a_o offering_n of_o it_o again_o as_o you_o imagin●_n for_o quick_a or_o dead_a thus_o at_o last_o we_o have_v view_v and_o scan_v all_o your_o evidence_n master_n albine_n and_o for_o any_o thing_n we_o can_v yet_o find_v unless_o gain_n and_o commodity_n that_o come_v roll_a in_o upon_o you_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o this_o point_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o relief_n of_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n be_v a_o more_o forcible_a argument_n to_o continue_v your_o like_n thereof_o than_o any_o thing_n say_v and_o teach_v with_o any_o constancy_n by_o any_o of_o these_o doctor_n in_o any_o of_o these_o place_n or_o any_o where_o else_o to_o countenance_v it_o withal_o we_o may_v easy_o be_v persuade_v that_o you_o will_v quiet_o give_v over_o stand_v any_o long_o in_o such_o egre_n defence_n of_o it_o as_o you_o do_v but_o indeed_o this_o argument_n have_v prove_v so_o sweet_a and_o strong_a of_o your_o side_n that_o until_o we_o be_v able_a to_o weaken_v this_o as_o we_o have_v do_v the_o rest_n that_o be_v to_o stop_v the_o passage_n of_o the_o come_n in_o of_o gain_n and_o commodity_n unto_o you_o this_o way_n we_o shall_v never_o put_v you_o to_o silence_n in_o this_o howsoever_o we_o prevail_v with_o you_o in_o all_o other_o point_n this_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o argument_n the_o first_o and_o last_o middlemost_a &_o all_o that_o in_o truth_n you_o have_v for_o this_o of_o any_o weight_n and_o this_o we_o can_v deny_v to_o such_o as_o you_o be_v must_v needs_o seem_v a_o most_o notable_a argument_n for_o to_o make_v you_o in_o love_n with_o it_o and_o even_o for_o the_o sake_n thereof_o alone_o to_o hold_v on_o your_o plea_n in_o this_o cause_n purgatory_n have_v so_o pick_v other_o man_n purse_n &_o fill_v you_o &_o so_o dispossess_v other_o &_o possess_v you_o and_o pray_v for_o soul_n there_o have_v so_o bring_v in_o payment_n to_o you_o &_o pill_v and_o pole_v the_o heir_n &_o friend_n of_o the_o dead_a that_o if_o you_o will_v speak_v for_o any_o thing_n sure_o you_o will_v speak_v &_o never_o give_v over_o speak_v for_o this_o johamnes_n angelus_n a_o man_n of_o some_o credit_n of_o your_o side_n say_v that_o the_o soul_n that_o be_v in_o purgatory_n be_v of_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n &_o that_o he_o if_o he_o will_v can_v at_o once_o even_o empty_a purgatory_n &_o therefore_o as_o it_o shall_v seem_v by_o his_o own_o right_n your_o pope_n clement_n the_o 6._o in_o his_o time_n by_o his_o bull_n command_v the_o angel_n to_o deliver_v thence_o so_o many_o soul_n as_o he_o think_v good_a but_o i_o pray_v you_o this_o be_v thus_o why_o neither_o do_v he_o nor_o any_o before_o he_o be_v so_o holy_a &_o merciful_a father_n to_o their_o subject_n &_o client_n as_o you_o pretend_v they_o be_v take_v such_o compassion_n of_o the_o poor_a soul_n there_o as_o of_o charity_n and_o compassion_n to_o rid_v they_o all_o thence_o at_o once_o the_o reason_n be_v that_o this_o your_o only_a argument_n of_o gain_n still_o to_o grow_v thereby_o may_v continue_v from_o time_n to_o time_n in_o force_n for_o doubtless_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v that_o such_o a_o noble_a race_n of_o holy_a &_o most_o holy_a father_n will_v have_v stay_v all_o this_o while_n from_o do_v such_o a_o wonderful_a work_n of_o
we_o only_o be_v save_v or_o they_o all_o condemn_v for_o i_o have_v show_v how_o a_o number_n yea_o infinite_a number_n of_o they_o may_v be_v save_v this_o notwithstanding_o as_o for_o your_o judgement_n that_o they_o never_o err_v so_o much_o as_o our_o disciple_n it_o be_v not_o material_a for_o you_o be_v no_o competent_a judge_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o your_o judgement_n that_o we_o condemn_v the_o faith_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v hold_v this_o 1500._o year_n and_o maintain_v the_o old_a rot_a condemn_a heresy_n be_v a_o thing_n which_o by_o beg_v after_o this_o sort_n at_o our_o hand_n though_o therein_o you_o be_v never_o so_o impudent_a and_o shameless_a a_o beggar_n as_o that_o way_n in_o this_o your_o book_n your_o great_a skill_n have_v appear_v you_o shall_v never_o get_v and_o therefore_o set_v your_o heart_n at_o rest_n your_o word_n though_o they_o be_v never_o so_o loud_a &_o stout_a shall_v never_o make_v we_o yield_v you_o this_o for_o a_o alm_n you_o must_v therefore_o prove_v your_o word_n true_a and_o so_o make_v unto_o we_o evident_a demonstration_n thereof_o which_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o do_v before_o we_o may_v yield_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o have_v any_o right_n at_o all_o to_o this_o the_o thirty-nine_o chapter_n if_o that_o by_o a_o good_a and_o a_o right_a title_n your_o disciple_n call_v themselves_o the_o child_n of_o god_n this_o make_v i_o believe_v that_o the_o say_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v fulfil_v in_o they_o the_o which_o be_v 16._o be_v luc._n 16._o the_o child_n of_o this_o world_n be_v wise_a in_o their_o generation_n then_o the_o child_n of_o light_n to_o prove_v this_o true_a we_o see_v this_o daily_a experience_n for_o a_o wise_a worldly_a man_n when_o he_o do_v put_v out_o his_o money_n to_o gain_v he_o will_v not_o trust_v the_o promise_n so_o soon_o of_o one_o or_o two_o or_o three_o as_o he_o will_v do_v the_o bond_n of_o a_o whole_a town_n or_o city_n that_o shall_v warrant_v or_o assure_v his_o gain_n but_o you_o nor_o your_o disciple_n have_v not_o do_v thus_o but_o rather_o the_o contrary_n it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o you_o to_o have_v first_o put_v your_o faith_n and_o trust_n in_o god_n believe_v that_o he_o have_v give_v his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o declare_v the_o meaning_n as_o touch_v the_o scripture_n unto_o the_o catholic_a church_n they_o church_n we_o build_v not_o our_o faith_n religion_n or_o hope_v of_o salvation_n of_o these_o man_n credit_n but_o upon_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o undoubted_a word_n of_o god_n set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v for_o credit_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o credit_n of_o all_o man_n speak_v beside_o or_o contrary_a unto_o they_o and_o not_o to_o hazard_v the_o hope_n of_o your_o salvation_n put_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la oecolampadius_n and_o three_o or_o four_o other_o such_o pelt_a merchant_n which_o have_v new_o set_v up_o shop_n at_o wittemberge_n geneva_n &_o losane_n which_o one_o of_o these_o day_n we_o shall_v see_v bankeroute_n as_o their_o predecessor_n have_v be_v before_o they_o the_o which_o after_o that_o they_o have_v deceive_v the_o poor_a simple_a catholic_n power_n catholic_n beware_v of_o dog_n phil._n 3._o ergo_fw-la take_v heed_n of_o this_o romish_a barker_n the_o best_a be_v he_o be_v but_o one_o that_o bark_v to_o bite_v &_o hurt_v he_o have_v small_a or_o no_o power_n and_o gain_v some_o of_o their_o soul_n for_o the_o devil_n they_o have_v at_o the_o last_o sell_v all_o their_o honesty_n and_o credit_n so_o that_o at_o this_o day_n except_o that_o it_o be_v those_o that_o read_v the_o ancient_a history_n no_o body_n else_o do_v remember_v that_o ever_o they_o live_v in_o the_o world_n you_o be_v come_v now_o last_o of_o all_o to_o make_v up_o their_o merchandise_n but_o your_o credit_n can_v hardly_o be_v good_a before_o god_n not_o god_n will_v you_o never_o have_v do_v with_o this_o bare_a &_o vain_a brag_n show_v this_o but_o once_o to_o be_v true_a and_o then_o we_o yield_v and_o then_o brag_v and_o spare_v not_o for_o you_o shall_v have_v against_o you_o all_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n which_o have_v continue_v visible_a since_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n unto_o this_o day_n all_o the_o doctor_n of_o all_o the_o university_n all_o the_o empire_n kingdom_n and_o private_a state_n throughout_o all_o the_o world_n which_o have_v receive_v and_o honour_v this_o doctrine_n that_o you_o call_v papistical_a and_o if_o you_o say_v that_o you_o will_v not_o trust_v man_n but_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o agree_v to_o the_o like_a that_o we_o ought_v all_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n but_o we_o vary_v about_o the_o interpretation_n for_o you_o interpret_v it_o after_o one_o sort_n and_o we_o after_o another_o you_o expound_v it_o after_o a_o new_a sort_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v follow_v tradition_n follow_v when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o trial_n it_o will_v be_v find_v that_o our_o interpretation_n rather_o than_o you_o have_v continuance_n from_o all_o the_o sound_a ancient_a doctor_n and_o the_o undoubted_a apostolical_a tradition_n the_o old_a exposition_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n &_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v forsake_v or_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n your_o minister_n have_v lead_v the_o sheep_n astray_o from_o the_o old_a flock_n at_o the_o depart_n from_o the_o which_o they_o have_v be_v all_o scatter_a abroad_o some_o follow_a luther_n some_o caluin_n some_o the_o anabaptist_n &_o so_o forth_o for_o the_o which_o the_o pope_n &_o king_n &_o other_o that_o have_v have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v answer_v at_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o as_o much_o as_o while_o pope_n while_o ergo_fw-la you_o have_v have_v sleepy_a pope_n they_o sleep_v you_o have_v come_v &_o sowedweed_n among_o the_o good_a corn_n then_o see_v you_o be_v the_o sheep_n that_o room_n astray_o what_o excuse_n can_v they_o make_v before_o god_n that_o wilful_o follow_v your_o step_n we_o confess_v that_o we_o be_v the_o poor_a sheep_n of_o god_n that_o have_v continue_v with_o our_o old_a flock_n steadfast_a &_o whole_a as_o touch_v our_o religion_n but_o very_o weak_a and_o sickly_a shame_n sickly_a amend_v they_o for_o shame_n as_o touch_v our_o manner_n that_o be_v to_o say_v sick_a say_v but_o your_o wound_n sore_n &_o sickness_n be_v grow_v so_o desperate_a that_o you_o will_v account_v none_o such_o but_o they_o that_o will_v tell_v you_o you_o be_v sound_a and_o in_o health_n where_o you_o be_v most_o sick_a full_a of_o sin_n &_o vice_n attend_v some_o sage_a physician_n to_o heal_v we_o &_o good_a pastor_n to_o keep_v we_o cast_v out_o the_o chaff_n from_o the_o corn_n i_o mean_v cut_v off_o those_o abuse_n that_o be_v offensive_a not_o to_o such_o scrupulous_a conscience_n as_o you_o have_v but_o unto_o he_o that_o do_v threaten_v they_o for_o the_o careless_a life_n of_o their_o sheep_n &_o so_o to_o continue_v in_o that_o do_v that_o prove_v this_o once_o some_o of_o you_o or_o else_o for_o shame_n never_o say_v it_o almost_o in_o every_o leaf_n for_o lack_v of_o matter_n as_o you_o do_v ancient_a faith_n that_o by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n we_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n the_o thirty-nine_o chapter_n in_o this_o chapter_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o your_o old_a great_a word_n &_o stout_a beg_v the_o main_a question_n that_o your_o church_n be_v the_o true_a &_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n that_o all_o the_o christian_n great_a &_o small_a since_o christ_n have_v be_v flat_a on_o your_o side_n that_o you_o be_v the_o only_a man_n that_o follow_v the_o sound_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n deliver_v unto_o you_o by_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o true_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n &_o that_o we_o be_v but_o two_o or_o three_o in_o comparison_n of_o you_o spring_v up_o yesterday_o &_o such_o as_o you_o prophesy_v will_v short_o grow_v banckerout_a both_o of_o credit_n and_o honesty_n this_o bladder_n full_a of_o nothing_o but_o wind_n be_v sufficient_o i_o hope_v prick_v and_o let_v out_o already_o by_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v in_o sundry_a place_n before_o howsoever_o i_o hope_v the_o reader_n be_v not_o so_o simple_a as_o that_o see_v in_o you_o never_o so_o great_a store_n of_o these_o swell_a word_n as_o long_o as_o he_o know_v your_o adversary_n deny_v they_o as_o stout_o of_o the_o other_o side_n and_o he_o see_v you_o bring_v nothing_o but_o bare_a word_n without_o proof_n he_o will_v any_o whit_n be_v move_v therewith_o and_o yet_o as_o not_o able_a a_o discourse_n as_o this_o book_n of_o you_o be_v account_v the_o great_a stuffing_n that_o it_o have_v be_v only_o
9_o &_o p._n 322._o auricular_a confession_n confute_v at_o large_a c_o 37._o p._n 322._o &c_n &c_n b._n baptism_n and_o the_o ceremony_n at_o large_a speak_v of_o 308._o etc._n etc._n baptism_n that_o be_v outward_a sometime_o separate_v from_o regeneration_n 280._o etc._n etc._n baptism_n bind_v not_o always_o the_o baptise_a to_o be_v of_o his_o religion_n that_o baptise_a he_o p._n 395._o 410._o bid_v always_o intermingle_v with_o good_a 404._o beza_n defend_v against_o albine_n slander_n 400_o bondage_n under_o popery_n as_o great_a as_o israel_n under_o pharaoh_n 170._o etc._n etc._n bohemian_o do_n consider_v and_o defend_v 291._o etc._n etc._n c._n caluins_n argument_n against_o the_o popish_a priesthood_n that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n unanswered_a by_o albine_n p._n 5._o ceremony_n popish_a how_o and_o when_o many_o of_o they_o come_v in_o and_o how_o withstand_v c._n p._n 15._o &_o 16._o collier_n faith_n what_o it_o be_v 222_o christ_n will_v be_v a_o whole_a and_o sole_a saviour_n or_o else_o no_o saviour_n at_o all_o 419._o christ_n church_n perpetual_a but_o not_o always_o visible_a in_o the_o popish_a sense_n 37._o etc._n etc._n &_o 122._o 413._o etc._n etc._n church_n why_o call_v catholic_a and_o so_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v not_o catholic_a p._n 360._o contention_n and_o variety_n of_o opinion_n among_o christian_n no_o news_n &_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o prejudice_n the_o truth_n 68_o 69._o 250._o contentious_a popish_a many_o and_o great_a 70._o 71._o 97._o 252._o etc._n etc._n corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la day_n when_o and_o by_o who_o it_o come_v in_o 161._o caiphas_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n as_o albine_n will_v seem_v he_o have_v 94._o 95_o cruelty_n of_o papist_n in_o seek_v to_o prevail_v &_o to_o stand_v by_o force_n 155._o etc._n etc._n 291._o etc._n etc._n cathechise_v in_o popery_n how_o bad_a it_o have_v be_v 179._o etc._n etc._n counsel_n have_v err_v and_o that_o even_a papist_n confess_v 230._o etc._n etc._n communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v but_o a_o new_a devise_n 159._o christ_n be_v to_o prove_v his_o call_n by_o miracle_n and_o yet_o not_o we_o 188._o etc._n etc._n &_o 403._o d._n dedicate_a of_o book_n to_o great_a person_n have_v good_a and_o ancient_a precedent_n a._n p._n 11._o and_o 12._o departure_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o now_o be_v lawful_a 149._o 394._o 417._o etc._n etc._n 409._o etc._n etc._n e._n education_n bind_v not_o the_o party_n to_o be_v always_o of_o their_o religion_n that_o bring_v he_o up_o 181._o to_o be_v read_v but_o not_o so_o as_o to_o discourage_v the_o simple_a from_o the_o study_n of_o they_o 205._o 208_o etc._n etc._n scripture_n allege_v in_o their_o true_a sense_n the_o ground_n that_o protestant_n stand_v upon_o 205_o etc._n etc._n scripture_n though_o never_o so_o much_o abuse_v by_o heretic_n yet_o by_o they_o they_o must_v be_v confute_v 226._o scripture_n must_v expound_v scripture_n 47._o 210._o 224._o scripture_n they_o which_v allege_v best_a they_o be_v to_o be_v follow_v 245_o etc._n etc._n scripture_n must_v try_v who_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 222_o etc._n etc._n scripture_n be_v to_o be_v study_v and_o read_v of_o all_o man_n 209_o etc._n etc._n scripture_n shameful_o speak_v of_o by_o papist_n the_o better_a to_o shun_v trial_n by_o they_o 82_o etc._n etc._n 212_o etc._n etc._n scripture_n fond_o allege_v and_o apply_v by_o papist_n 35_o etc._n etc._n 218._o scripture_n in_o some_o sense_n may_v well_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n 87._o 393._o scripture_n whether_o rightly_a allege_v by_o protestant_n or_o papist_n examine_v 215._o 216._o &c_n &c_n scripture_n be_v so_o allege_v by_o protestant_n that_o they_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o neither_o papist_n nor_o heretic_n 215_o etc._n etc._n scripture_n be_v both_o judge_v and_o witness_v 262._o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a sound_a touchstone_n both_o of_o truth_n church_n &_o al._n 33_o etc._n etc._n 46_o etc._n etc._n 244_o 406._o scripture_n by_o papist_n thought_n never_o to_o be_v sound_o interpret_v but_o according_a to_o the_o present_a practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n 214._o 219._o sin_n be_v more_o stricte_o condemn_v by_o protestant_n then_o by_o papist_n 285._o 404._o succession_n papist_n have_v neither_o personal_a 25_o etc._n etc._n succession_n papist_n have_v neither_o local_a 25_o etc._n etc._n succession_n papist_n have_v neither_o not_o real_a 21_o etc._n etc._n 27_o succession_n popish_a we_o reject_v not_o so_o much_o for_o their_o bad_a life_n as_o doctrine_n 92._o 301._o succession_n neither_o local_a nor_o personal_a any_o certain_a note_n of_o truth_n 27_o etc._n etc._n succession_n in_o the_o truth_n the_o only_a succession_n indeed_o to_o be_v stand_v simple_o upon_o 31_o etc._n etc._n supper_n of_o the_o lord_n wonderful_o pervert_v of_o the_o papist_n 31._o 416._o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n new_a how_o &_o by_o who_o it_o come_v up_o and_o by_o who_o still_o resist_v p._n 11._o &c_n &c_n 161._o etc._n etc._n t._n tradition_n beside_o the_o word_n write_v countenance_v by_o abuse_v of_o irenaeus_n and_o other_o p._n 1_o &_o 2._o 76_o etc._n etc._n tradition_n unwriten_a the_o ground_n of_o popery_n c._n p._n 5._o p._n 82._o tradition_n beside_o and_o contrary_n to_o the_o word_n write_v reject_v by_o the_o father_n c._n 2._o p._n 46_o 78._o etc._n etc._n 224._o etc._n etc._n tradition_n speak_v for_o and_o allow_v by_o the_o father_n always_o warrant_v by_o the_o scripture_n c._n p._n 2_o &_o 3._o tradition_n unwriten_a heretic_n common_o fly_v unto_o even_o as_o the_o papist_n do_v p._n 5_o &_o 6_o 33._o transubstantiation_n when_o it_o come_v in_o and_o how_o confute_v d._n 7_o &_o 8._o p._n 109._o tree_n that_o be_v good_a bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n that_o be_v to_o be_v take_v 274_o 278._o etc._n etc._n truth_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o custom_n &_o all_o thing_n else_o c._n p._n 7._o 86._o 100_o 406._o truth_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o bishop_n mouth_n and_o chair_n 28._o 29._o 94._o 95._o 151._o etc._n etc._n truth_n be_v most_o ancient_a and_o that_o be_v it_o that_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n 102._o turk_n and_o jew_n take_v occasion_n the_o more_o to_o be_v harden_v for_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n of_o image_n and_o transubstantiation_n 217._o v._o visible_a &_o demonstrable_a succession_n be_v neither_o certain_a note_n of_o church_n not_o truth_n 28_o ●7_n etc._n etc._n 51._o unity_n and_o christian_a peace_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o church_n though_o the_o rite_n be_v diverse_a 312._o etc._n etc._n unity_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o verity_n man_n be_v not_o to_o continue_v in_o 417._o etc._n etc._n unity_n in_o every_o thing_n follow_v not_o upon_o right_a pray_v for_o the_o spirit_n 247._o etc._n etc._n unity_n papist_n have_v not_o though_o they_o brag_v thereof_o never_o so_o much_o 70._o 71._o 97._o 246._o 252._o universality_n indeed_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v not_o 388_o etc._n etc._n vocation_n ordinary_a have_v not_o always_o be_v find_v in_o they_o that_o have_v be_v mean_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o nation_n &_o that_o have_v profitable_o preach_v 30._o 123._o etc._n etc._n vocation_n may_v be_v good_a and_o lawful_a though_o the_o call_v have_v fault_n 131._o &_o vocation_n of_o what_o sort_n popish_a prelate_n have_v 14_o etc._n etc._n vow_n in_o popery_n foolish_a and_o superstitious_a 306._o etc._n etc._n w._n want_v and_o fault_n of_o the_o church_n to_o reform_v man_n be_v not_o bind_v only_o to_o use_v prayer_n 141._o way_n that_o be_v narrow_a both_o for_o life_n and_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o broad_a way_n 395._o etc._n etc._n work_n that_o be_v good_a indeed_o rather_o find_v with_o protestant_n they_o with_o papist_n 280._o etc._n etc._n 286._o 404._o finis_fw-la fault_n escape_v in_o print_v through_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o author_n the_o hardness_n and_o smallness_n of_o the_o hand_n wherein_o the_o copy_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o press_n and_o the_o unacquaintance_n of_o the_o overseer_n with_o the_o same_o a._n p._n 1_o l._n 26_o ●_o why_o for_o when_o 4._o 16._o before_o for_o unto_o b._n 1._o 7_o the_o for_o that_o l._n 33._o the_o for_o their_o 15._o 16_o for_o second_o 11._o &_o l._n 20_o when_o for_o who_o l._n 35_o for_o the_o their_o c._n 1._o 12_o prune_v for_o prove_v 7._o 12_o they_o for_o they_o &_o l._n 25_o put_v in_o i_o say_v next_o therefore_o 12._o 23_o for_o first_o sixth_o 15._o 11_o put_v out_o of_o dispose_v the_o first_o s_o d._n 2._o 9_o paula_n for_o pacta_fw-la and_o in_o armonians_n e_o for_o o_o and_o in_o moralia_fw-la be_v for_o l._n 6._o 9_o put_v in_o next_o they_o they_o do_v 7._o 1_o that_o for_o the_o 9_o 34_o